Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n day_n indulgence_n remission_n 4,546 5 11.4935 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A00793 The answere vnto the nine points of controuersy, proposed by our late soueraygne (of famous memory) vnto M. Fisher of the Society of Iesus And the reioynder vnto the reply of D. Francis VVhite minister. With the picture of the sayd minister, or censure of his writings prefixed. Fisher, John, 1569-1641.; Floyd, John, 1572-1649. 1626 (1626) STC 10911; ESTC S102112 538,202 656

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

say_v his_o suffering_n as_o example_n be_v perfect_a and_o full_a &_o yet_o be_v supply_v by_o saint_n paul_n why_o may_v not_o the_o same_o suffering_n as_o satisfaction_n be_v supply_v by_o s._n paul_n without_o be_v imperfect_a for_o saint_n paul_n be_v say_v to_o supply_v the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n as_o satisfactory_a not_o because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o infinite_a value_n but_o because_o god_n will_v have_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o his_o servant_n to_o be_v join_v with_o christ_n that_o christ_n may_v have_v their_o full_a effect_n even_o to_o the_o cancel_v of_o the_o debt_n of_o temporal_a pain_n minister_n pag._n 564._o the_o indulgence_n tertullian_n oppose_v be_v the_o same_o whereof_o s._n cyprian_n speak_v epist._n 10.11.12_o to_o wit_n relaxation_n of_o canonical_a censure_n and_o pennance_n to_o notorious_a sinner_n at_o the_o request_n of_o martyr_n live_v in_o prison_n answer_n it_o be_v true_a tertullian_n be_v a_o heretic_n oppose_v such_o indulgence_n as_o s._n cyprian_n do_v mention_v as_o allow_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o that_o these_o indulgence_n be_v only_a relaxation_n of_o canonical_a pennance_n &_o censure_n you_o say_v but_o show_v not_o yea_o that_o the_o pennance_n release_v be_v require_v in_o foro_fw-la conscientiae_fw-la to_o satisfy_v god_n anger_n appear_v by_o s._n cyprian_n his_o word_n in_o that_o ten_o epistle_n by_o you_o mention_v deo_fw-la patri_fw-la misericordi_fw-la satisfacere_fw-la pro_fw-la delictis_fw-la suis_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la agentes_fw-la possunt_fw-la and_o that_o penitent_n to_o make_v this_o full_a satisfaction_n unto_o god_n and_o so_o obtain_v pardon_n be_v holpen_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o martyr_n the_o same_o saint_n cyprian_n do_v affirm_v epist._n 13._o they_o who_o have_v receive_v bill_n from_o the_o martyr_n to_o be_v release_v of_o their_o penance_n may_v by_o the_o prerogative_n of_o martyr_n be_v holpen_v with_o god._n and_o epist._n 14._o they_o who_o bring_v the_o bill_n from_o the_o martyr_n may_v by_o their_o help_n be_v aid_v in_o their_o sin_n this_o catholic_a practice_n of_o pardon_v unto_o penitent_n the_o reserve_v temporal_a penalty_n by_o the_o application_n of_o martyr_n suffrage_n &_o satisfaction_n to_o have_v be_v impugn_a by_o tertullian_n in_o his_o heresy_n be_v manifest_a by_o his_o make_v the_o penitent_a in_o a_o heretical_a humour_n to_o say_v to_o the_o martyr_n who_o apply_v his_o satisfaction_n for_o his_o pardon_n if_o thou_o be_v a_o sinner_n thou_o need_v satisfaction_n and_o pardon_n thyself_o how_o then_o can_v thy_o oil_n of_o satisfaction_n be_v sufficient_a both_o for_o thou_o and_o i_o also_o the_o martyr_n that_o sue_v for_o pardon_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o penitent_n he_o accuse_v of_o prodigality_n therein_o which_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o martyr_n bestow_v something_o that_o be_v their_o own_o upon_o penitent_n that_o they_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o may_v be_v pardon_v which_o can_v be_v any_o thing_n beside_o their_o own_o suffering_n according_a as_o they_o be_v satisfactory_a for_o sin_n minister_n pag._n 565._o the_o adversary_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v pope_n pardon_n in_o tertullians_n day_n that_o he_o can_v prove_v they_o have_v any_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o peter_n lombard_n or_o hugo_n victor_n answer_n still_o you_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v a_o bold_a affirmer_n about_o thing_n you_o know_v not_o for_o what_o more_o evident_a falsehood_n than_o this_o you_o vent_v that_o indulgence_n have_v not_o any_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o peter_n lombard_n the_o waldensian_a sect_n be_v in_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o peter_n lombard_n as_o do_v witness_n illyricus_n in_o cate-log_n test._n colum_fw-la 1498._o and_o they_o as_o the_o same_o illyricus_n do_v record_n ibid._n colum_fw-la 1501._o &_o 1511._o contemn_v and_o deride_v the_o indulgence_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v but_o that_o they_o see_v the_o same_o have_v some_o be_v and_o use_n then_o in_o the_o church_n pope_n paschall_n the_o 2._o some_o year_n before_o peter_n lombard_n grant_v the_o indulgence_n of_o 40._o day_n to_o all_o that_o be_v present_a at_o the_o lateran_n general_n council_n keep_v in_o his_o time_n as_o write_v vrspergen_n chron._n a_o 1106._o vrban_n the_o second_o in_o the_o year_n 1096._o before_o peter_n lombard_n be_v bear_v in_o the_o general_n council_n of_o clerimont_n in_o france_n grant_v a_o plenary_a indulgence_n unto_o all_o that_o shall_v go_v to_o fight_v for_o the_o recovery_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n yea_o leo_n the_o three_o almost_o four_o hundred_o year_n before_o peter_n lombard_n to_o wit_n eight_o hundred_o year_n ago_o as_o write_v s._n lutgerus_n in_o vita_fw-la sancti_fw-la switberti_fw-la c._n 9_o do_v at_o the_o request_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a dedicate_v the_o temple_n of_o our_o bless_a lady_n of_o aquisgra●e_fw-la donans_fw-la eam_fw-la multis_fw-la indulgentijs_fw-la bestow_v many_o indulgence_n upon_o it_o moreover_o the_o pope_n say_v he_o in_o france_n consecrate_v many_o church_n every_o where_o grant_v many_o indulgence_n and_o again_o the_o pope_n grant_v special_a indulgence_n unto_o the_o say_a church_n for_o all_o the_o faithful_a that_o shall_v keep_v the_o feast_n of_o saint_n switbert_n and_o come_v on_o his_o day_n to_o hear_v divine_a service_n behold_v how_o frequent_a and_o ordinary_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v eight_o hundred_o year_n ago_o for_o the_o pope_n to_o give_v out_o indulgence_n which_o you_o say_v have_v not_o any_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o peter_n lombard_n not_o only_a s._n thomas_n &_o many_o catholic_n write_v that_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a before_o the_o year_n six_o hundred_o grant_v indulgence_n but_o also_o protestant_n as_o friar_n bale_n act._n rom._n pontif._n print_v at_o basil_n anno_fw-la 1558._o gregory_n say_v he_o do_v confirm_v the_o devotion_n of_o people_n in_o visit_v image_n by_o grant_v they_o indulgence_n and_o again_o he_o be_v the_o first_o pope_n that_o do_v grant_v indulgence_n unto_o they_o that_o shall_v upon_o certain_a day_n visit_v church_n and_o though_o we_o can_v direct_o prove_v that_o such_o general_a indulgence_n for_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v use_v before_o saint_n gregory_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o probable_a that_o holy_a pope_n will_v use_v it_o without_o the_o example_n of_o his_o predecessor_n yea_o have_v this_o practice_n be_v then_o novel_a the_o same_o will_v have_v be_v note_v but_o whensoever_o the_o use_n of_o such_o indulgence_n begin_v certain_a it_o be_v that_o personal_a indulgence_n grant_v unto_o particular_a person_n upon_o particular_a examination_n of_o their_o cause_n be_v ever_o in_o use_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n as_o do_v appear_v by_o the_o former_a testimony_n of_o s._n cyprian_a &_o tertullian_n minister_n pag._n 566._o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v express_o that_o all_o spiritual_a redemption_n be_v immediate_o wrought_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o purge_v sin_n by_o himself_o hebr._n 1.3_o but_o our_o adversary_n restrain_v this_o and_o the_o like_a place_n to_o the_o stain_n and_o eternal_a guilt_n of_o sin_n say_v that_o the_o guilt_n of_o temporal_a pain_n be_v redeem_v by_o christ_n only_o mediate_o by_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o saint_n which_o be_v against_o the_o apostle_n coloss._n 2.12_o affirm_v that_o christ_n blot_v out_o the_o handwriting_n of_o decree_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n that_o be_v against_o we_o and_o that_o by_o himself_o but_o the_o temporary_a punishment_n be_v contain_v within_o the_o latitude_n of_o the_o law_n levit._fw-la 26.14_o answer_n you_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o your_o adversary_n or_o else_o witting_o misrelate_n the_o same_o for_o catholic_n distinguish_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n redemption_n and_o the_o condition_n by_o mean_n of_o which_o the_o same_o be_v apply_v unto_o particular_a person_n all_o spiritual_a gift_n of_o this_o life_n &_o of_o the_o future_a all_o remission_n of_o sin_n either_o mortal_a or_o venial_a all_o releasement_n of_o punishment_n either_o eternal_a or_o temporal_a be_v wrought_v by_o way_n of_o redemption_n immediate_o &_o only_o by_o the_o blood_n &_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o the_o condition_n which_o god_n require_v that_o the_o same_o be_v apply_v unto_o particular_a person_n be_v not_o only_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n nor_o be_v the_o same_o kind_n of_o condition_n require_v in_o respect_n of_o every_o grace_n some_o be_v give_v upon_o condition_n of_o mere_a mercy_n some_o not_o otherwise_o then_o according_a to_o man_n work_n the_o gift_n of_o justify_v grace_n be_v apply_v unto_o man_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o sacramtt_n through_o god_n only_a mercy_n the_o sinner_n by_o faith_n penance_n and_o contrition_n dispose_v his_o soul_n for_o the_o reception_n thereof_o but_o the_o grace_n and_o gift_n of_o eternal_a life_n purchase_v by_o christ_n his_o blood_n be_v not_o apply_v
hispan_n l._n 8._o c._n 10._o marian._n de_fw-fr reb_fw-mi hisp._n l._n 11._o c._n 14_o 15._o mahometan_n in_o a_o battle_n with_o alphonsus_n king_n of_o castille_n surname_v the_o noble_a have_v the_o better_a of_o the_o day_n the_o christian_a army_n be_v almost_o put_v to_o flight_n the_o archdeacon_n of_o toledo_n full_a of_o christian_a courage_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n the_o ensign_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o he_o carry_v before_o his_o archbishop_n wherein_o also_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n go_v therewith_o through_o the_o thick_a of_o the_o enemy_n without_o be_v hurt_n though_o innumerable_a lance_n &_o dart_n be_v cast_v and_o arrow_n shoot_v at_o he_o by_o his_o example_n the_o christian_a army_n encourage_v return_v with_o new_a fortitude_n to_o the_o battayne_n put_v the_o saracen_n to_o flight_n make_v massacre_n of_o they_o who_o be_v so_o many_o as_o the_o lance_n dart_n &_o arrow_n leave_v behind_o they_o in_o the_o field_n can_v not_o be_v consume_v with_o the_o many_o mighty_a fire_n make_v two_o day_n together_o aswell_o in_o token_n of_o joy_n as_o for_o other_o use_n more_o ancient_a &_o no_o less_o wonderful_a be_v the_o victory_n get_v against_o the_o same_o infidel_n by_o raymirus_n king_n of_o leon_n and_o galicia_n he_o ambros._n moral_a &_o all_o other_o historian_n have_v gather_v together_o all_o the_o force_n of_o his_o kingdom_n against_o these_o mahometan_a usurper_n be_v defeat_v be_v bring_v to_o great_a distress_n &_o sadness_n as_o he_o rest_v in_o the_o night_n s._n james_n appear_v unto_o he_o tell_v he_o that_o christ_n have_v peculiar_o commit_v spain_n to_o his_o tuition_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o fear_v but_o trust_v in_o god_n the_o next_o day_n present_v the_o field_n to_o the_o infidel_n for_o himself_o will_v be_v in_o the_o fight_n the_o king_n do_v as_o the_o holy_a apostle_n ordain_v who_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n be_v see_v in_o the_o field_n upon_o a_o white_a horse_n with_o a_o red_a cross_n on_o his_o breast_n run_v upon_o the_o mahometan_n and_o put_v they_o to_o flight_n unto_o vide_fw-la diploma_fw-la regis_fw-la apud_fw-la joan._n marian._n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr s._n jacobi_fw-la in_o hispaniam_fw-la adventu_fw-la in_o fine_a which_o victory_n not_o only_o the_o king_n in_o his_o charter_n with_o many_o bishop_n &_o noble_n of_o his_o realm_n as_o eye-witness_n give_v record_v but_o even_o the_o mahometan_a history_n make_v mention_v thereof_o if_o i_o add_v unto_o these_o foreign_a history_n our_o domestical_a victory_n i_o shall_v be_v over_o long_o yet_o can_v i_o pretermit_v to_o touch_v one_o example_n in_o every_o line_n and_o nation_n of_o our_o king_n among_o the_o britan_n none_o more_o famous_a than_o prince_n arthur_n nor_o be_v any_o of_o his_o victory_n more_o certain_a than_o that_o record_v by_o beda_n lib._n 1._o c._n 20._o histor_n henricus_fw-la h●nt●ng_n r●nulph_n venerable_a bede_n though_o without_o mention_n of_o he_o the_o pict_n and_o saxon_n associate_a their_o force_n and_o invade_v the_o britan_n with_o a_o most_o dreadful_a army_n the_o priest_n of_o the_o britan_n holy_a s._n german_n bishop_n be_v prince_n of_o the_o choir_n by_o sing_v alleluia_n &_o other_o church-prayer_n strike_v such_o a_o dismal_a fright_n into_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o infidel_n that_o abandon_v their_o weapon_n and_o armour_n they_o run_v away_o with_o all_o possible_a haste_n the_o miracle_n of_o josue_n josue_n c._n 6._o his_o victory_n be_v renew_v when_o the_o wall_n of_o jericho_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n at_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o sacerdotal_a trumpet_n whereby_o also_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n be_v authorize_v that_o church-prayer_n in_o a_o language_n not_o vulgar_o understand_v may_v be_v please_v and_o effectual_a with_o god_n in_o the_o line_n of_o our_o saxon_a king_n who_o for_o the_o fight_n of_o many_o battle_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o renown_a victory_n more_o admire_v than_o king_n alfrede_n which_o asser._n meneu_fw-fr in_o vita_fw-la alured_n polidor_n l_o ●_o gu●●el_n malme_n &_o alij_fw-la victory_n so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a he_o win_v by_o his_o devotion_n unto_o saint_n particular_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o saint_n cuthbert_n who_o appear_v to_o the_o king_n encourage_v he_o unto_o that_o famous_a battle_n whereby_o the_o force_n of_o the_o usurp_a infidel_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n whole_o extinguish_v after_o the_o conquest_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o conqueror_n himself_o who_o vast_a and_o valiant_a enterprise_n be_v make_v fortunate_a by_o a_o consecrate_a standart_n ingulph_n matt._n westmon_n &_o alij_fw-la send_v he_o by_o pope_n alexander_n the_o second_o i_o will_v only_o name_v king_n henry_n the_o five_o the_o mirror_n of_o king_n in_o who_o be_v sum_v together_o the_o whole_a perfection_n of_o all_o catholic_a military_n and_o politic_a worthiness_n on_o the_o one_o side_n who_o more_o renown_a for_o victory_n they_o this_o conqueror_n of_o france_n which_o in_o the_o space_n of_o few_o year_n he_o bring_v in_o a_o manner_n whole_o under_o his_o obedience_n on_o the_o other_o who_o more_o memorable_a for_o his_o obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a sea_n for_o his_o reverence_n of_o catholic_a priesthood_n for_o his_o care_n and_o respect_n of_o church_n for_o his_o zeal_n against_o the_o wickliffian_n heresy_n for_o his_o daily_a devout_a invocation_n of_o saint_n for_o his_o go_v barefoot_a in_o pilgrimage_n unto_o church_n titus_n livius_fw-la de_fw-la vita_fw-la henrici_fw-la thomas_n walse_v enguerant_fw-la stow_z and_o other_o two_o monasterye_n he_o build_v from_o the_o foundation_n opposite_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o upon_o the_o bank_n of_o the_o thames_n that_o term_v bethleem_n for_o religious_a man_n this_o zion_n for_o consecrate_a virgin_n which_o shall_v day_n and_o night_n without_o intermission_n pray_v for_o the_o happy_a success_n of_o his_o war_n in_o france_n he_o nicol._n harpesfield_n hist._n eccles._n anglic._n saecul_fw-la 15._o cap._n 3._o spend_v and_o command_v his_o army_n to_o spend_v the_o night_n before_o the_o famous_a battle_n of_o agincourt_n in_o prayer_n in_o invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o make_v their_o confession_n unto_o priest_n in_o do_v penance_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o morning_n before_o the_o battle_n every_o one_o by_o his_o order_n put_v a_o piece_n of_o earth_n to_o his_o mouth_n to_o testify_v his_o desire_n have_v there_o be_v opportunity_n to_o have_v receive_v the_o sacred_a communion_n in_o one_o kind_n as_o both_o the_o token_n do_v signify_v and_o then_o be_v the_o practice_n so_o that_o the_o divine_a providence_n grant_v so_o glorious_a a_o victory_n unto_o so_o few_o against_o walsingham_n write_v the_o french_a be_v a_o hundred_o &_o forty_o thousand_o the_o english_a not_o above_o ten_o thousand_o so_o many_o make_v as_o it_o be_v proclamation_n unto_o the_o world_n that_o these_o now_o question_v roman_a devotion_n be_v acceptable_a unto_o he_o in_o the_o hecto●_n boethius_n histor_n scot._n fol._n 196._o bucan_n histor._n scot._n fol._n 48._o annal_n of_o scotland_n we_o read_v that_o guthran_n king_n of_o the_o dane_n in_o baptism_n term_v athelstan_n have_v subdue_v a_o good_a part_n of_o england_n invade_v scotland_n his_o army_n be_v so_o puissant_a as_o therewith_o he_o environ_v hungus_n king_n of_o the_o pict_n and_o alpinius_n prince_n of_o scotland_n with_o their_o force_n that_o come_v against_o he_o denounce_v unto_o they_o by_o one_o that_o have_v a_o loud_a and_o shrill_a voice_n that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v escape_v alive_a the_o king_n hungus_n after_o long_a prayer_n unto_o god_n and_o s._n andrew_n be_v asleep_a the_o say_a apostle_n appear_v unto_o he_o bid_v he_o fight_v the_o next_o day_n with_o confidence_n in_o god_n &_o his_o aid_n the_o battle_n be_v fight_v crux_fw-la decussata_fw-la saint_n andrew_n cross_n appear_v over_o the_o scottish_a army_n the_o field_n win_v against_o the_o dane_n athelstan_n slay_v therein_o s._n andrew_n confirm_v patron_n of_o scotland_n his_o cross_n make_v their_o ensign_n a_o famous_a church_n build_v in_o his_o honour_n to_o the_o use_n whereof_o and_o mantaynance_n of_o canon_n therein_o the_o king_n apply_v the_o ten_o part_n of_o deciman_n regiorum_fw-la praediorum_fw-la partem_fw-la his_o royal_a patrimony_n the_o great_a battle_n that_o scottishman_n ever_o win_v without_o doubt_n be_v that_o of_o strivel_a against_o our_o edward_n the_o second_o the_o scottish_a history_n say_v this_o king_n army_n do_v consist_v of_o a_o hundred_o &_o fifty_o thousand_o horse_n and_o of_o as_o many_o foot_n and_o though_o this_o may_v seem_v great_a exaggeration_n yet_o our_o thomas_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr more_n in_o vita_fw-la edwardi_fw-la 2._o numquam_fw-la magis_fw-la splendidus_fw-la nobilis_fw-la &_o superbus_fw-la anglorum_fw-la exercitus_fw-la visus_fw-la stow_z anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1313._o pag._n 333._o english_a annal_n testify_v that_o never_o
to_o meet_v knock_n will_v be_v sure_a not_o to_o be_v want_v among_o they_o i_o need_v not_o seek_v far_o for_o the_o like_a example_n of_o your_o vanity_n the_o very_a next_o page_n after_o your_o picture_n be_v sufficient_o store_v with_o such_o kind_n of_o stuff_n two_o woman_n there_o stand_v opposite_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o that_o of_o the_o right_a side_n for_o your_o gospel_n that_o on_o the_o left_a for_o the_o roman_a religion_n between_o who_o you_o have_v picture_v four_o or_o five_o opposition_n which_o deserve_v to_o be_v note_v be_v wise_a one_o in_o which_o shine_v your_o skill_n in_o mystical_a or_o symbolical_a theology_n the_o first_o opposition_n your_o protestant_a woman_n have_v a_o sun_n of_o glory_n about_o her_o head_n to_o signify_v that_o she_o be_v 18._o be_v in_o sole_fw-la posuit_fw-la tabernaculum_fw-la suum_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la in_o manifestatione_n posuit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la svam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la in_o oculto_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la lateat_fw-la quid_fw-la heretice_fw-la fugis_fw-la ad_fw-la tenebras_fw-la quid_fw-la latitare_fw-la conaris_fw-la august_n in_o psal._n 18._o seat_v in_o the_o sun_n ever_o in_o manifest_a sight_n ever_o conspicuous_a to_o the_o world_n so_o perpetual_o visible_a that_o for_o more_o than_o 12._o hundred_o year_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n unto_o luther_n she_o be_v never_o see_v in_o the_o world_n as_o 168._o as_o napier_n upon_o revelat._n pag._n 168._o your_o doctor_n confess_v and_o the_o motto_n you_o have_v set_v under_o she_o do_v insinuate_v veritatem_fw-la aperit_fw-la dies_fw-la time_n discover_v truth_n as_o who_o shall_v say_v the_o same_o be_v hide_v until_o these_o late_a day_n of_o luther_n but_o see_v the_o conference_n with_o the_o devil_n whereby_o your_o luther_n be_v illumine_v happen_v at_o midnight_n as_o etc._n as_o vbi_fw-la supra_fw-la media_fw-la nocte_fw-la expergefactus_fw-la sum_fw-la qua_fw-la mecum_fw-la diabolus_fw-la disputationem_fw-la orsus_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n himself_o do_v testify_v i_o think_v not_o veritatem_fw-la aperit_fw-la dies_fw-la but_z nox_fw-la nocti_fw-la indicat_fw-la scientiam_fw-la according_a to_o the_o verbal_a sound_n will_v have_v be_v the_o fit_a motto_n for_o your_o gospel_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o roman_a religion_n poor_a woman_n be_v by_o you_o paint_v stark_o blind_a with_o this_o vnderscription_n error_n caecus_fw-la perchance_o you_o think_v she_o must_v needs_o be_v blind_a in_o respect_n of_o her_o old_a age_n have_v live_v in_o open_a profession_n to_o the_o world_n ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n this_o i_o may_v suspect_v to_o be_v your_o reason_n do_v i_o not_o see_v that_o you_o attribute_v the_o same_o papistical_a blindness_n even_o to_o the_o ancient_a and_o primitive_a church_n luther_n affirm_v 434._o affirm_v luther_n tom._n ●_o wittemb_n lib._n de_fw-fr seruo_fw-la arbitr_n p._n 434._o that_o the_o father_n of_o so_o many_o age_n be_v stark_o blind_a another_o protestant_n of_o great_a name_n do_v profess_v 43._o profess_v caelius_n secundus_fw-la curio_n de_fw-fr amplitud_n reg._n christi_fw-la l._n 1._o pag._n 43._o that_o the_o whole_a world_n ever_o almost_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n until_o this_o last_o age_n live_v in_o darkness_n blindness_n and_o ignorance_n your_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n doubt_v not_o to_o pronounce_v 473._o pronounce_v whitegift_n defence_n pag._n 472_o &_o 473._o how_o great_o spot_v be_v almost_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o of_o the_o latin_a also_o for_o the_o most_o part_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o freewill_n merit_n invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o like_a that_o never_o since_o the_o apostle_n be_v there_o a_o church_n so_o pure_a and_o perfect_a as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v at_o this_o day_n wherefore_o we_o need_v not_o be_v angry_a with_o your_o paint_v our_o religion_n stark_o blind_a see_v she_o can_v not_o be_v the_o christian_a religion_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n ever_o since_o christ_n be_v she_o not_o blind_a in_o the_o foolish_a imagination_n of_o your_o fantastical_a gospel_n the_o second_o opposition_n mistress_n protestancy_n be_v paint_v with_o her_o breast_n open_a her_o pap_n display_v naked_a down_o to_o the_o girdle_n you_o will_v say_v this_o do_v represent_v the_o naked_a simplicity_n and_o candour_n of_o truth_n which_o your_o religion_n love_v no_o doubt_n that_o simple_a truth_n be_v find_v in_o she_o which_o hold_v man_n may_v lawful_o lie_v in_o behalf_n of_o her_o mentiri_fw-la her_o osiander_n epitome_n histor_n centur_fw-la 16._o pag_n 79●_n han●_n regulam_fw-la habent_fw-la caluinistae_fw-la l●cere_fw-la pro_fw-la gloria_fw-la christi_fw-la mentiri_fw-la gospel_n and_o that_o they_o can_v never_o lie_v enough_o in_o so_o good_a a_o cause_n may_v not_o i_o say_v more_o ●●uly_o that_o this_o more_o fit_o represent_v that_o the_o immodest_a fashion_n of_o woman_n to_o go_v with_o their_o breast_n naked_a as_o now_o be_v the_o use_n be_v by_o your_o gospel_n bring_v into_o england_n a_o fashion_n so_o odious_a in_o catholic_a time_n as_o even_o strumpet_n dare_v not_o use_v it_o in_o public_a hence_o some_o may_v suspect_v this_o levity_n &_o lightness_n character_v by_o her_o attire_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o her_o great_a belly_n wherewith_o you_o seem_v to_o set_v she_o forth_o whereby_o also_o you_o may_v signify_v that_o she_o be_v the_o offspring_n not_o of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n but_o of_o vigilantius_n his_o gospel_n which_o be_v so_o religious_a &_o devote_a unto_o carnal_a fecundity_n that_o as_o do_v testify_v 1._o testify_v nisi_fw-la pregnantes_fw-la viderint_fw-la vxores_fw-la clericorum_fw-la infantesque_fw-la de_fw-la ulnis_fw-la matrum_fw-la vagientes_fw-la christi_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la non_fw-la tribuunt_fw-la hieron_n lib._n advers._n vigil_n cap._n 1._o s._n hierome_n her_o bishop_n will_v not_o order_v any_o minister_n except_o first_o they_o see_v their_o wife_n either_o to_o have_v great_a belly_n or_o young_a babe_n hang_v at_o their_o breast_n though_o perchance_o your_o meaning_n be_v by_o this_o emblem_n to_o express_v the_o blessing_n of_o fecundity_n which_o your_o gospel_n enjoy_v in_o your_o worship_n of_o the_o ministry_n who_o yearly_o fill_v the_o parish_n of_o the_o realm_n with_o many_o novel_a branch_n of_o your_o leviticall_a stock_n on_o the_o other_o side_n you_o have_v do_v a_o deed_n of_o charity_n towards_o the_o roman_a woman_n in_o clothe_v she_o with_o modest_a attire_n from_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n to_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o foot_n the_o foot_n of_o your_o religion_n be_v bare_a to_o signify_v perchance_o that_o she_o be_v a_o barefooted_a nun_n or_o a_o great_a practicant_n of_o go_v barefoot_a in_o pilgrimage_n and_o of_o such_o penitential_a work_n and_o whereas_o you_o make_v the_o garment_n of_o our_o church_n speack●●d_v with_o great_a variety_n of_o incise_v work_n this_o do_v not_o displease_v we_o whatsoever_o your_o meaning_n may_v be_v for_o this_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o emblem_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n use_v by_o the_o royal_a prophet_n psal_n 44._o where_o she_o be_v describe_v a_o queen_n stand_v on_o the_o right-hand_a of_o the_o fair_a among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 44.15_o man_n psal._n 44.15_o circumamicta_fw-la varietatibus_fw-la clothe_v about_o with_o variety_n which_o variety_n wrought_v on_o her_o garment_n may_v signify_v the_o great_a variety_n of_o holy_a heroical_a work_n practise_v by_o her_o child_n whereby_o she_o 59.6_o she_o lex_fw-la domini_fw-la immaculata_fw-la convertens_fw-la animas_fw-la psal._n 18.8_o isa._n 59.6_o convert_v so_o great_a variety_n of_o nation_n from_o paganism_n unto_o christ._n fron_n the_o attire_n of_o which_o kind_n of_o work_n your_o religion_n be_v as_o naked_a &_o innocent_a as_o the_o child_n new_o bear_v that_o of_o your_o endeavour_n in_o this_o behalf_n we_o may_v pronounce_v that_o of_o the_o prophet_n inutilia_fw-la prophet_n telae_fw-la eorum_fw-la non_fw-la erunt_fw-la in_o vestiman_n un●_n opera_fw-la eorum_fw-la opera_fw-la inutilia_fw-la the_o web_n they_o weave_v will_v not_o serve_v for_o clothing_n their_o work_n be_v unprofitable_a work_n for_o your_o doctrine_n have_v no_o force_n to_o convert_v infidel_n unto_o christ_n but_o only_o to_o pervert_v &_o draw_v 16._o draw_v indocti_fw-la &_o instabiles_fw-la depravant_fw-la scripturas_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la sunt_fw-la difficilia_fw-la intellectu_fw-la 2._o pet._n 3_o 16._o unstable_a christian_n from_o his_o church_n the_o three_o opposition_n the_o woman_n of_o your_o religion_n be_v paint_v with_o a_o royal_a crown_n in_o her_o right_a hand_n hold_v the_o same_o towards_o her_o breast_n to_o show_v her_o affection_n unto_o king_n who_o she_o hug_v in_o her_o arm_n as_o the_o ape_n do_v his_o young_a one_o till_o she_o press_v they_o to_o death_n by_o extremity_n of_o love_n this_o happen_v unto_o his_o majesties_n etc._n majesties_n camden_n elizab._n p._n 458._o hunc_fw-la lamentabilem_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la finem_fw-la habuit_fw-la maria_fw-la scotorum_fw-la regina_fw-la
etc._n etc._n mother_n who_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o your_o religion_n you_o hold_v she_o so_o fast_o you_o grip_v she_o so_o hard_a as_o you_o drive_v the_o breath_n out_o of_o her_o body_n &_o make_v her_o sacred_a blood_n run_v about_o she_o anoint_v shoulder_n the_o roman_a religion_n in_o opposite_a have_v give_v she_o by_o your_o paint_v a_o vizard_n and_o be_v make_v to_o stand_v tread_v upon_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n to_o signify_v that_o she_o be_v by_o doctrine_n and_o practice_v a_o deposer_n &_o contemner_n of_o king_n this_o fancy_n will_v indeed_o be_v a_o truth_n can_v you_o prove_v that_o wickliff_n luther_n caluin_n beza_n knox_n buchanam_n wittingham_n goodman_n &_o the_o like_a preface_n like_a see_v bancroft_n danger_n posit_n whit_n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o &_o l._n 2._o c_o 1._o &_o protestant_n apolog._n preface_n be_v roman_a catholic_n or_o can_v you_o show_v that_o they_o be_v papist_n of_o who_o 68_o who_o beza_n ep._n theolog._n 68_o beza_n say_v put_v himself_o in_o the_o number_n what_o church_n shall_v we_o now_o have_v in_o the_o world_n have_v not_o this_o course_n be_v hold_v to_o wit_n of_o erect_v church_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n in_o despite_n preface_n despite_n protestant_n have_v murder_v five_o catholic_a king_n or_o prince_n they_o have_v depose_v nine_o from_o their_o kingdom_n whole_o or_o in_o part_n they_o have_v set_v up_o their_o religion_n at_o the_o least_o in_o forty_o town_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n expel_v the_o magistrate_n murder_a priest_n &_o religious_a person_n break_v down_o image_n and_o burn_a church_n they_o have_v be_v at_o the_o least_o twenty_o several_a time_n in_o the_o field_n against_o their_o catholic_a soveraygne_n &_o six_o or_o seven_o time_n against_o their_o soveraygne_n that_o be_v present_a in_o person_n all_o which_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o protestant_n if_o the_o margin_n do_v permit_v read_v bancroft_n dangerous_a position_n osianders_n epitome_n histor._n centur._n 16._o &_o the_o protestant_n apolog._n preface_n of_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n so_o plain_o do_v he_o acknowledge_v your_o church_n to_o have_v be_v every_o where_o plant_v by_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o command_n &_o edict_n the_o sword_n &_o government_n the_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n of_o king_n the_o four_o opposition_n the_o protestant_a gentlewoman_n hold_v a_o pillar_n under_o her_o left_a arm_n with_o a_o bough_n of_o palm_n in_o the_o same_o hand_n whereas_o the_o roman_a have_v on_o her_o left_a hand_n a_o chameleon_n sit_v your_o meaning_n be_v that_o you_o forsooth_o be_v strong_a &_o constant_a in_o your_o religion_n but_o we_o weak_a &_o waver_a ready_a to_o change_v for_o fear_n of_o persecution_n your_o constancy_n indeed_o be_v know_v that_o you_o be_v in_o your_o doctrine_n as_o immutable_a as_o the_o moon_n in_o what_o point_n of_o religion_n say_v 3_o say_v andraeas_n duditius_n see_v epist._n theol._n bezae_n epist_n 1._o &_o 3_o a_o eminent_a protestant_n be_v they_o that_o impugn_v the_o roman_a bishop_n firm_a and_o constant_a they_o coin_v monthly_a faith_n they_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o the_o wind_n of_o every_o doctrine_n what_o their_o religion_n be_v to_o day_n one_o may_v know_v but_o what_o it_o will_v be_v to_o morrow_n neither_o themselves_o nor_o any_o mortal_a man_n can_v tell_v and_o whereas_o you_o make_v this_o your_o gossip_n to_o have_v on_o her_o left_a side_n the_o pillar_n of_o religion_n &_o on_o her_o right_n the_o crown_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v more_o fit_a to_o express_v your_o church_n of_o england_n for_o in_o her_o religion_n king_n have_v the_o better_a &_o upper_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o apostolical_a sentence_n we_o must_v rather_o obey_v god_n they_o man_n be_v turn_v backward_o her_o doctrine_n be_v mutable_a with_o the_o prince_n pleasure_n that_o she_o may_v be_v better_o resemble_v by_o a_o weathercock_n they_o by_o a_o pillar_n for_o what_o constancy_n can_v she_o have_v that_o prefer_v a_o temporal_a crown_n before_o christian_a truth●_n the_o five_o opposition_n between_o these_o two_o woman_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o title_n that_o be_v set_v over_o their_o head_n your_o be_v term_v veritas_fw-la vnivoca_fw-la and_o we_o mendacium_fw-la aequivocum_fw-la veritas_fw-la univoca_fw-la be_v in_o english_a verity_n teach_v by_o the_o professor_n thereof_o with_o one_o voice_n with_o uniform_a consent_n i_o think_v the_o reader_n will_v smile_v at_o your_o good_a invention_n that_o you_o can_v find_v no_o true_a title_n for_o your_o gospel_n for_o what_o more_o notorious_a to_o the_o world_n then_o that_o your_o reform_a professor_n be_v vnivocall_a in_o the_o doctrine_n they_o preach_v as_o divine_a truth_n even_o as_o the_o bvilder_n of_o babel_n be_v vnivocall_a in_o language_n after_o the_o division_n of_o their_o tongue_n unto_o the_o roman_a religion_n which_o do_v detest_v lie_v about_o any_o the_o least_o thing_n which_o condemn_v equivocal_a &_o ambiguous_a speech_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o religion_n in_o matter_n of_o bargain_n in_o familiarity_n of_o mitigation_n of_o see_v the_o treatise_n tend_v to_o mitigation_n speech_n why_o do_v you_o term_v she_o mendacium_fw-la aequivocum_fw-la upon_o no_o other_o ground_n but_o in_o regard_n she_o teach_v that_o a_o christian_n to_o defend_v his_o life_n and_o good_n from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o oppressor_n may_v sometime_o use_v ambiguous_a and_o reserve_v speech_n a_o practice_n express_o allow_v in_o scripture_n as_o reticetur_fw-la as_o gregor_n in_o exposit_n l._n 1._o reg._n c._n 16._o his_o verbis_fw-la ostenditur_fw-la quòd_fw-la tyrannorum_fw-la saevitia_fw-la atque_fw-la versutia_fw-la quandoque_fw-la est_fw-la pia_fw-la fraud_v deludenda_fw-la sic_fw-la tamen_fw-la tyranni_fw-la deludendi_fw-la sunt_fw-la ut_fw-la caveatur_fw-la culpa_fw-la mendacii_fw-la quod_fw-la tunc_fw-la bene_fw-la perficitur_fw-la cùm_fw-la illud_fw-la quod_fw-la fit_a asseritur_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la fit_a sic_fw-la dicitur_fw-la ut_fw-la celetur_fw-la quia_fw-la ex_fw-la parte_fw-la dicitur_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la reticetur_fw-la say_v s._n gregory_n the_o scripture_n show_v that_o the_o crafty_a cruelty_n of_o tyrant_n be_v sometime_o to_o be_v delude_v by_o pious_a fraud_v so_o save_v ourselves_o from_o their_o malice_n that_o we_o tell_v not_o a_o lie_n which_o then_o be_v well_o perform_v when_o what_o be_v do_v be_v affirm_v yet_o so_o affirm_v as_o what_o be_v do_v be_v also_o conceal_v the_o thing_n be_v utter_v in_o part_n and_o in_o part_n not_o utter_v but_o retain_v in_o mind_n i_o hope_v i_o have_v clear_o discover_v the_o falsehood_n &_o inanity_n of_o your_o frontispiciall_a emblem_n and_o pageant_n which_o occasion_v my_o set_v this_o picture_n before_o the_o rejoinder_n the_o rather_o also_o to_o make_v your_o image_n perfect_a and_o complete_a in_o the_o entrance_n of_o both_o our_o ●ookes_n put_v together_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v behold_v in_o the_o one_o the_o outside_n in_o the_o other_o the_o inside_n of_o your_o venerable_a self_n if_o caluin_n scandalis_fw-la caluin_n caluin_n lib._n de_fw-la scandalis_fw-la say_v true_a of_o minister_n praeclarum_fw-la quidem_fw-la zelum_fw-la simulant_fw-la they_o can_v make_v a_o excellent_a fair_a show_n of_o zeal_n i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o your_o painter_n curious_a hand_n have_v elegant_o set_v forth_o your_o outside_n for_o he_o have_v paint_v in_o your_o face_n a_o fair_a show_n of_o zeal_n of_o modesty_n of_o wisdom_n of_o gravity_n special_o in_o your_o demure_a look_n velvet_n cap_n and_o gray_a beard_n so_o comb_v and_o handsome_o compose_v as_o your_o wife_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v have_v her_o finger_fw-la in_o the_o trim_v thereof_o aswell_o as_o in_o the_o set_n of_o your_o ruff_n but_o quid_fw-la si_fw-la intus_fw-la excutias_fw-la what_o if_o we_o look_v into_o the_o inside_n here_o your_o painter_n pencil_n fail_v he_o which_o defect_n some_o body_n perchance_o yourself_o undertake_v to_o supply_v with_o his_o poetical_a quill_n set_v these_o verse_n under_o your_o picture_n and_o the_o picture_n of_o your_o book_n wear_v a_o crown_n wisdom_n &_o grace_n see_v in_o that_o modest_a look_n truth_n be_v triumph_n error_n downfall_n in_o this_o book_n but_o this_o be_v not_o lively_a paint_n of_o your_o inside_n to_o the_o eye_n but_o only_o verbal_a assertion_n of_o your_o hide_a worth_n to_o the_o ear_n which_o if_o one_o will_v reject_v as_o the_o fabulous_a conceit_n of_o a_o poet_n what_o can_v be_v reply_v or_o if_o you_o be_v author_n of_o the_o verse_n yourself_o some_o perhaps_o will_v attribute_v these_o praise_n not_o unto_o truth_n but_o unto_o your_o fawn_v with_o over-favourable_a fancy_n upon_o your_o own_o learning_n triumph_v before_o the_o victory_n and_o usurp_v a_o crown_n without_o right_n what_o then_o shall_v i_o do_v how_o may_v i_o set_v forth_o the_o true_a &_o undeniable_a figure_n of_o your_o inside_n your_o ●74_n your_o reply_v pag._n ●74_n self_n say_v
subscribe_v unto_o as_o contain_v etc._n contain_v see_v the_o approbation_n i_o francis_n white_n etc._n etc._n nothing_o but_o what_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o public_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o yet_o here_o you_o say_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n &_o son_n of_o perdition_n so_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v of_o their_o number_n who_o the_o say_a author_n in_o that_o very_a place_n do_v rebuke_v as_o omnium_fw-la horarum_fw-la homines_fw-la halter_n in_o opinion_n for_o private_a end_n i_o omit_v also_o your_o folly_n in_o exclaim_v at_o the_o misery_n of_o english_a romist_n for_o that_o they_o adhere_v unto_o your_o suppose_a antichrist_n not_o mark_v that_o to_o cleave_v to_o the_o antichrist_n of_o your_o form_n must_v even_o according_a to_o your_o own_o principle_n be_v singular_a happiness_n for_o antichrist_n according_a to_o your_o tenet_n do_v sit_v &_o govern_v in_o the_o house_n and_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o so_o by_o the_o same_o breath_n wherewith_o you_o make_v man_n vassal_n of_o antichrist_n you_o make_v they_o god_n domestic_n his_o house_n his_o temple_n will_v it_o be_v misery_n to_o be_v find_v such_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n yea_o rather_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v only_o one_o out_o of_o which_o no_o salvation_n be_v have_v what_o a_o misery_n will_v it_o be_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n when_o by_o your_o own_o mouth_n you_o shall_v be_v convince_v to_o have_v forsake_v that_o company_n which_o you_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o church_n and_o temple_n of_o god_n through_o fear_n of_o your_o own_o shadow_n and_o fancy_n for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o foolish_a then_o to_o fasten_v the_o name_n of_o antichrist_n upon_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n who_o do_v daily_o profess_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n who_o by_o his_o adherent_n do_v more_o than_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o defend_v and_o propagate_v among_o pagan_n his_o most_o holy_a name_n &_o religion_n but_o to_o let_v these_o thing_n pass_v mark_v how_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o in_o say_v on_o the_o one_o side_n that_o that_o can_v be_v the_o house_n &_o temple_n of_o god_n which_o now_o have_v or_o in_o former_a time_n have_v have_v wicked_a pastor_n on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o that_o be_v the_o house_n and_o temple_n of_o god_n in_o which_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v a_o succession_n of_o wicked_a pastor_n have_v a_o long_a while_n for_o many_o age_n govern_v and_o do_v rule_v and_o govern_v so_o hard_o be_v it_o for_o man_n blind_v with_o passion_n against_o christian_a doctrine_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n to_o run_v in_o their_o passionate_a conceit_n without_o fall_v into_o the_o pit_n of_o open_a contradiction_n whereby_o their_o folly_n come_v to_o be_v manifest_a unto_o all_o man_n the_o three_o error_n you_o profess_v infidelity_n about_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n §._o 3._o thus_o you_o write_v pag._n 179._o to_o that_o part_n of_o the_o jesuit_n speech_n that_o we_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n or_o else_o the_o main_n article_n of_o the_o creed_n that_o christ_n be_v still_o in_o hea●en_n because_o we_o will_v not_o allow_v a_o body_n in_o two_o place_n at_o ●nce_n i_o answer_v we_o can_v grant_v that_o one_o individual_a ●ody_n may_v be_v in_o many_o distant_a place_n at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o instant_n of_o time_n until_o the_o papall_v demonstrate_v the_o possibility_n thereof_o by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n ●r_o by_o apparent_a reason_n thus_o you_o this_o be_v plain_a dea●ing_n and_o open_a profession_n of_o infidelity_n for_o what_o ●s_v heretical_a obstinacy_n but_o to_o reject_v the_o word_n of_o god_n ●bout_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o plain_n express_a and_o literal_a sense_n until_o the_o possibility_n of_o ●hat_n sense_n be_v first_o demonstrate_v no_o heretic_n be_v e●er_o so_o barbarous_a as_o to_o prefer_v his_o reason_n beyond_o god_n word_n so_o far_o as_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n contrary_a to_o his_o reason_n be_v false_a their_o impiety_n be_v to_o reject_v god_n word_n about_o some_o mystery_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o literal_a sense_n fly_v to_o moral_a and_o mystical_a interpretation_n because_o they_o can_v not_o comprehend_v and_o therefore_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o possibility_n of_o the_o plain_n and_o literal_a sense_n the_o arrian_n do_v not_o deny_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n say_v 7_o say_v 1._o joan._n ●_o 7_o of_o the_o father_n word_n and_o holy_a ghost_n these_o three_o be_v one_o nor_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n 10.30_o christ_n joan._n 10.30_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o to_o be_v true_a moral_o and_o mystical_o in_o respect_n of_o unity_n by_o singular_a affection_n and_o consent_n betwixt_o these_o three_o person_n they_o be_v heretic_n for_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o these_o word_n in_o the_o proper_a and_o substantial_a sense_n because_o the_o same_o seem_v to_o they_o impossible_a for_o see_v that_o we_o may_v not_o expound_v the_o scripture_n about_o mystery_n of_o faith_n to_o a_o easy_a figurative_a sense_n when_o the_o same_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n go_v beyond_o the_o capacity_n of_o our_o understanding_n god_n do_v so_o often_o in_o holy_a writ_n 9.22_o writ_n gen._n 18.17_o numquid_fw-la deo_fw-la quid_fw-la est_fw-la difficile_fw-la hie●rm_n 32.17_o non_fw-fr est_fw-fr difficile_fw-la tibi_fw-la omne_fw-la verbum_fw-la et_fw-fr v._n 27._o numquid_fw-la mihi_fw-la difficile_fw-la erit_fw-la omne_fw-la verbum_fw-la luc._n 1.37_o non_fw-la erit_fw-la impossibile_fw-it apud_fw-la deum_fw-la omne_fw-la verbum_fw-la et_fw-la deo_fw-la omne_fw-la possibilia_fw-la sunt_fw-la matt._n ●9_n 26_o luc._n 18.27_o omnia_fw-la possibilia_fw-la sunt_fw-la credenti_fw-la mar._n 9.22_o assure_v we_o that_o nothing_o be_v impossible_a or_o difficile_a unto_o he_o and_o 9.10_o and_o job._n 9.10_o that_o he_o can_v do_v thing_n incomprehensible_a without_o number_n what_o great_a obstinacy_n then_o for_o christian_a man_n to_o profess_v that_o they_o will_v never_o believe_v his_o word_n about_o the_o mysterye_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o literal_a sense_n until_o the_o possibility_n of_o the_o sense_n be_v demonstrate_v unto_o they_o that_o be_v bring_v within_o the_o compass_n and_o comprehension_n of_o their_o wit_n you_o may_v perchance_o excuse_v yourself_o by_o say_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n institution_n this_o be_v my_o body_n take_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n do_v not_o enforce_v that_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o corporal_a substance_n be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o i_o answer_v this_o you_o can_v say_v without_o contradict_v not_o only_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n as_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o rejoinder_n but_o also_o yourself_o for_o you_o do_v plain_o affirm_v that_o this_o our_o doctrine_n yea_o even_a transubstantiation_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n if_o say_v you_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v deliver_v in_o the_o eucharist_n than_o the_o word_n be_v figurative_a and_o can_v be_v true_a in_o the_o proper_a sense_n because_o one_o individual_a substance_n can_v be_v predicate_v of_o another_o proper_o thus_o you_o 3●7_n you_o reply_v pag._n 3●7_n whereupon_o i_o thus_o argue_v that_o without_o which_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v true_a in_o the_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n be_v enforce_v and_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n take_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n but_o except_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v absent_a and_o christ_n in_o lieu_n thereof_o present_a according_a to_o his_o corporal_a substance_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n can_v be_v true_a in_o the_o literal_a and_o proper_a sense_n as_o you_o affirm_v ergo_fw-la transubstantiation_n and_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n according_a to_o his_o bodily_a substance_n in_o lieu_n of_o bread_n be_v enforce_v &_o prove_v by_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n institution_n wherefore_o to_o profess_v as_o you_o ●o_o never_o to_o believe_v christ_n body_n to_o be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o until_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v unto_o you_o to_o be_v possible_a be_v to_o profess_v you_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o literal_a sense_n about_o mystery_n of_o faith_n further_o than_o the_o possibility_n thereof_o can_v be_v make_v evident_a unto_o you_o be_v not_o this_o to_o profess_v infidelity_n second_o you_o may_v say_v that_o when_o you_o require_v that_o we_o demonstrate_v by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n that_o a_o body_n may_v be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o you_o mean_v not_o that_o we_o bring_v text_n of_o
against_o the_o context_n and_o order_n of_o the_o sentence_n of_o god_n word_n this_o sentence_n he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o be_v five_o sentence_n or_o verse_n after_o this_o other_o unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n yea_o these_o word_n he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n live_v for_o ever_o be_v absolute_o the_o very_a last_o wherewith_o christ_n shut_v up_o his_o discourse_n about_o sacramental_a take_v his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n wherefore_o not_o to_o be_v force_v to_o grant_v that_o christ_n promise_v as_o much_o to_o the_o eat_n of_o sacramental_a bread_n only_o as_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v both_o you_o be_v force_v to_o deny_v the_o text_n and_o context_n of_o god_n word_n if_o you_o say_v our_o saviour_n indeed_o speak_v the_o word_n he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o but_o that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o sacramental_a bread_n nor_o of_o sacramental_a eat_n i_o reply_v first_o why_o then_o do_v you_o not_o acknowledge_v this_o text_n aswell_o as_o this_o other_o if_o any_o eat_v this_o bread_n he_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o second_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o for_o that_o the_o seven_o chap._n of_o s._n john_n speak_v of_o sacramental_a eat_n &_o drink_v yourself_o affirm_v many_o time_n in_o this_o reply_n as_o pag._n 395._o lin_v 8._o pag._n 406._o lin_v 13._o &_o pag._n 466._o lin_v 20._o a_o second_o example_n of_o your_o be_v force_v to_o deny_v or_o not_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o text_n of_o god_n word_n be_v find_v pag._n 75._o there_o the_o jesuit_n say_v that_o even_o in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v visible_o universal_a refer_v himself_o for_o proof_n to_o the_o apocalips_n 20._o v._o 8._o you_o in_o lieu_n of_o the_o eight_o verse_n cite_v the_o seven_o then_o shall_v satan_n be_v let_v loose_a &_o shall_v go_v forth_o and_o seduce_v nation_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o four_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n gog_n and_o magog_n &_o shall_v gather_v they_o into_o a_o battle_n the_o number_n of_o who_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n which_o text_n be_v impertinent_a for_o it_o prove_v that_o the_o army_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v for_o multitude_n of_o man_n innumerable_a not_o the_o universal_a diffusion_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o his_o reign_n why_o stop_v you_o at_o the_o sea●enth_fw-mi verse_n why_o will_v you_o not_o proceed_v to_o set_v ●owne_n the_o word_n of_o the_o eight_o that_o be_v under_o your_o ●yes_n unto_o which_o the_o jesuit_n marginal_a quotation_n refer_v you_o very_o you_o see_v that_o they_o prove_v the_o jesuit_n intent_n so_o clear_o as_o you_o know_v not_o what_o to_o re●ly_o for_o the_o text_n say_v 8.20_o say_v apoc._n 8.20_o of_o antichrists_n pursuivant_n ●hey_n go_v over_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o compass_a a●out_n the_o camp_n of_o saint_n and_o thc_a belove_a city_n by_o which_o ●lace_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o camp_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o beloved_a city_n to_o wit_n the_o church_n persecute_v by_o anti●hrist_n in_o his_o reign_n shall_v be_v spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o ●he_n earth_n ●ou_fw-mi be_v force_v to_o go_v against_o christ_n express_a word_n §._o 2._o the_o jesuit_n pag._n 409._o argue_v in_o this_o sort_n if_o god_n can_v put_v a_o whole_a camel_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o needle_n be_v he_o not_o ●ble_n to_o put_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n in_o a_o consecrate_a host_n ●ut_fw-la god_n can_v put_v a_o camel_n in_o a_o needle_n eye_n witness_v our_o saviour_n matth._n 19_o v._n 24.25.26_o where_o have_v say_v it_o be_v ●ore_o easy_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n then_o ●or_a a_o rich_a man_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n when●is_fw-la disciple_n do_v much_o wonder_n thereat_o demand_v who_o then_o can_v be_v save_v he_o answer_v with_o man_n this_o 〈◊〉_d impossible_a but_o all_o thing_n be_v possible_a unto_o god_n our_o answer_n say_v you_o pag_n 412._o be_v that_o these_o words●ll_a ●ll_z thing_n be_v possible_a to_o god_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o latter_a ●art_n of_o christ_n speech_n touch_v the_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o ●eaven_n and_o not_o to_o the_o camel_n pass_v through_o the_o needle_n 〈◊〉_d all_o thing_n agreeable_a to_o truth_n and_o which_o god_n will_v have_v do_v be_v possible_a but_o that_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o truth_n for_o a_o camel_n retain_v his_o quantity_n with_o the_o whole_a body_n to_o pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n or_o that_o god_n will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v do_v deserve_v to_o be_v credit_v when_o the_o adversary_n prove_v it_o by_o divine_a revelation_n or_o by_o other_o demonstration_n thus_o you_o force_v by_o your_o adversary_n to_o deny_v the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n as_o i_o demonstrate_v by_o three_o argument_n first_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v name_v many_o thing_n as_o difficile_a hard_a and_o impossible_a with_o man_n conclude_v that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o thing_n only_o but_o all_o be_v possible_a with_o god_n then_o to_o say_v that_o one_o of_o the_o thing_n only_o &_o not_o all_o be_v possible_a to_o god_n be_v direct_o to_o contradict_v our_o saviour_n &_o to_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n our_o saviour_n have_v name_v many_o thing_n as_o hard_o difficile_a and_o impossible_a unto_o man_n to_o wit_n that_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n and_o that_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n conclude_v that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o thing_n only_o but_o all_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n apud_fw-la deu●_n omne_fw-la possibilia_fw-la sunt_fw-la 10.27_o sunt_fw-la matth._n 19.16_o mar._n 10.27_o all_o these_o hard_a and_o difficile_a thing_n be_v possible_a with_o god_n ergo_fw-la you_o in_o say_v that_o one_o sort_n of_o these_o thing_n by_o he_o name_v as_o hard_a &_o difficile_a be_v impossible_a unto_o god_n to_o wit_n that_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n do_v direct_o contradict_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n &_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n second_o to_o affirm_v that_o a_o camel_n passage_n through_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o needle_n be_v impossible_a unto_o god_n be_v more_o direct_o against_o this_o speech_n of_o our_o saviour_n then_o to_o say_v that_o a_o rich_a man_n entrance_n into_o heaven_n be_v impossible_a this_o i_o prove_v if_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o of_o the_o two_o the_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n be_v more_o easy_a that_o be_v less_o difficile_a then_o to_o deny_v the_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n to_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n be_v more_o direct_o against_o our_o saviour_n ●ord_n then_o so_o to_o affirm_v of_o a_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o 〈◊〉_d kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o if_o thing_n more_o easy_a &_o ●●sse_n difficile_a be_v impossible_a how_o much_o more_o thing_n ●●sse_n easy_a and_o more_o difficile_a if_o we_o may_v with_o truth_n affirm_v that_o god_n can_v do_v what_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n we_o know_v to_o be_v more_o easy_a much_o rather_o may_v we_o affirm_v god_n can_v do_v what_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n we_o believe_v to_o be_v more_o difficile_a this_o be_v clear_a ●ut_v our_o saviour_n say_v most_o express_o that_o it_o be_v more_o ea●y_n that_o be_v less_o difficile_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o ●_o needle_n eye_n then_o for_o a_o richman_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n ergo_fw-la your_o say_v the_o pas●ing_n of_o a_o camel_n through_o a_o needle_n eye_n to_o be_v impossible_a unto_o god_n be_v more_o against_o this_o place_n of_o his_o word_n ●hen_o have_v you_o so_o affirm_v of_o a_o rich_a man_n enter_v in●o_o heaven_n three_o if_o this_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n all_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n be_v refer_v direct_o proper_o and_o special●y_n unto_o a_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n &_o not_o unto_o a_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o heaven_n than_o you_o do_v direct_o oppose_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n but_o that_o ●his_v speech_n all_o be_v possible_a unto_o god_n be_v in_o this_o manner_n ●eferred_v unto_o the_o camel_n pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n &_o not_o unto_o the_o rich_a man_n enter_v into_o heaven_n ●s_v evident_a by_o the_o drift_n of_o this_o place_n for_o our_o lord_n by_o this_o discourse_n do_v direct_o intend_v to_o show_v not_o a_o rich_a man_n salvation_n to_o be_v possible_a but_o the_o apostle_n argument_n which_o move_v they_o to_o despair_v of_o the_o salvation_n of_o rich-man_n not_o to_o be_v good_a they_o hear_v our_o saviour_n say_v it_o be_v more_o easy_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o pass_v through_o a_o needle_n eye_n then_o that_o a_o rich_a man_n enter_v in_o
●each_v that_o bless_a mary_n be_v a_o entire_a virgin_n only_o until_o ●er_n childbirth_n but_o according_a to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n he_o come_v forth_o of_o the_o virgin_n womb_n the_o same_o still_o rest_v entire_a and_o as_o a_o bridegroom_n out_o of_o his_o bride-chamber_n now_o you_o may_v crow_v and_o crake_v &_o crown_v your_o book_n as_o you_o do_v in_o your_o picture_n when_o you_o be_v so_o press_v by_o your_o adversary_n that_o you_o be_v force_v to_o defend_v your_o error_n by_o hold_v ancient_a heresye_n and_o by_o lay_v the_o term_n of_o sophistical_a inference_n upon_o the_o catholic_a faith_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n in_o answer_v scripture_n you_o contradict_v yourself_o and_o grant_v the_o jesuit_n the_o question_n §._o 4._o the_o vanity_n of_o your_o former_a brag_n that_o the_o jesuit_n have_v prove_v nothing_o by_o scripture_n be_v further_a make_v apparent_a in_o that_o he_o do_v so_o urge_v you_o with_o scripture_n as_o you_o be_v sometime_o force_v to_o contradict_v yourself_o sometime_o to_o grant_v as_o much_o as_o he_o do_v require_v against_o yourself_o the_o jesuit_n pag._n 98._o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christian_a pastor_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n be_v infallible_a in_o her_o tradition_n because_o our_o saviour_n say_v matth._n 28._o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n you_o answer_v pag._n 100_o that_o which_o be_v promise_v upon_o condition_n be_v not_o absolute_a until_o the_o condition_n be_v fulfil_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n be_v promise_v to_o the_o apostle_n successor_n conditional_o and_o as_o they_o be_v one_o with_o the_o apostle_n by_o imitation_n &_o subordination_n that_o be_v so_o far_o as_o they_o walk_v in_o their_o step_n &_o conform_v their_o doctrine_n and_o ministry_n to_o the_o pattern_n receive_v from_o they_o thus_o you_o in_o this_o place_n but_o pag._n 174._o lin_v 21._o speak_v of_o the_o absolute_a perpetuity_n and_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n you_o say_v that_o the_o place_n matth._n 28.20_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n prove_v that_o the_o church_n be_v universal_a in_o respect_n of_o time_n and_o that_o it_o continue_v successive_o in_o all_o age_n this_o your_o say_n overthrow_v what_o you_o say_v that_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n be_v promise_v upon_o condition_n wherein_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v fail_v for_o this_o place_n behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n until_o the_o world_n end_n do_v show_v the_o church_n to_o be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n no_o other_o way_n then_o because_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n be_v always_o and_o all_o day_n to_o the_o world_n end_n with_o his_o church_n &_o he_o can_v not_o be_v still_o in_o the_o world_n with_o his_o church_n except_o his_o church_n have_v still_o a_o be_v in_o the_o world_n so_o that_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o place_n we_o may_v aswell_o or_o better_o say_v the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n then_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o world_n without_o christ_n or_o his_o divine_a assistance_n to_o teach_v man_n infallible_o the_o truth_n wherefore_o if_o by_o this_o place_n we_o can_v as_o you_o say_v we_o can_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v ever_o absolute_o assist_v of_o christ_n much_o less_o do_v this_o place_n convince_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v always_o in_o the_o world_n or_o further_a then_o conditional_o if_o it_o walk_v in_o ●he_n apostles_n doctrine_n contrariwise_o if_o this_o place_n ●rove_v that_o the_o church_n be_v absolute_o always_o in_o the_o world_n until_o the_o consummation_n thereof_o then_o à_fw-la for●iori_fw-la more_o strong_o and_o more_o direct_o do_v it_o prove_v ●hat_n christ_n be_v absolute_o &_o not_o only_o conditional_o present_a with_o his_o church_n all_o day_n to_o the_o world_n end_n ●o_o that_o to_o answer_v the_o jesuit_n proof_n of_o his_o religion_n ●y_a scripture_n you_o contradict_v yourself_o yea_o sometime_o ●rant_v against_o yourself_o as_o much_o as_o he_o will_v prove_v for_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n ●e_n bring_v pag._n 3_o the_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n 3.15_o paul_n 1._o tim._n 3.15_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n &_o pillar_n of_o truth_n but_o the_o ground_n of_o ●ertaine_a &_o infallible_a truth_n such_o as_o the_o christian_a be_v ●ust_z be_v certain_a &_o infallible_a you_o answer_v pag._n 4._o lin_v ●_o if_o by_o the_o church_n we_o understand_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n ●●uing_v af●er_o the_o apostle_n the_o same_o be_v by_o office_n and_o calling_n ●he_v pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n in_o all_o age_n this_o your_o answer_n allow_v unto_o the_o jesuit_n asmuch_o as_o he_o desire_v 〈◊〉_d can_v desire_v to_o show_v the_o church_n to_o be_v always_o infallible_a for_o that_o which_o be_v by_o office_n and_o divine_a vocation_n the_o ●●llar_n and_o ground_n of_o infallible_a truth_n have_v by_o divine_a ordination_n and_o assistance_n sufficiency_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o office_n as_o be_v most_o evident_a the_o church_n ●hich_v be_v fallible_a &_o may_v err_v be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a pillar_n 〈◊〉_d ground_n that_o be_v have_v not_o sufficiency_n to_o be_v the_o ground_n 〈◊〉_d christian_a truth_n which_o be_v infallible_a for_o how_o can_v 〈◊〉_d building_n sure_a &_o immovable_a stand_n found_v upon_o 〈◊〉_d uncertain_a ruinous_a and_o totter_a foundation_n ●herfore_o see_v you_o grant_v the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n to_o be_v in_o all_o age_n the_o ground_n of_o truth_n by_o divine_a vocation_n unto_o that_o office_n you_o do_v consequent_o allow_v unto_o the_o jesuit_n as_o much_o as_o he_o will_v prove_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n be_v i●_n all_o age_n until_o the_o world_n end_n certain_a and_o infallible_a in_o her_o teach_n in_o lieu_n of_o answer_v you_o confirm_v the_o jesuit_n argument_n §._o 5._o the_o jesuit_n pag._n 38._o accuse_v minister_n of_o abuse_v the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o to_o prove_v the_o sole_a sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n in_o respect_n of_o all_o man_n cite_v the_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n 2._o tim._n 3.15_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n for_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v direct_v particular_o to_o timothy_n say_v they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v thou_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n whence_o it_o be_v consequent_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a for_o timothy_n and_o be_v sufficient_a for_o such_o man_n as_o tymothy_n be_v to_o wit_n for_o man_n learned_a and_o aforehand_o instruct_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o thereupon_o firm_o believe_v all_o the_o most_o main_a and_o necessary_a point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o discipline_n that_o the_o scripture_n for_o man_n in_o this_o manner_n teach_v and_o ground_v in_o faith_n be_v abundant_o sufficient_a who_o will_v deny_v thus_o the_o jesuit_n unto_o who_o you_o shape_v this_o answer_n pag._n 39_o although_o sentence_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v sometime_o restrain_v to_o the_o personal_a and_o particular_a subject_n of_o which_o they_o be_v first_o speak_v yet_o this_o be_v not_o general_a and_o when_o the_o same_o happen_v it_o must_v be_v prove_v by_o better_a argument_n then_o by_o the_o bare_a emphasis_n of_o a_o word_n for_o god_n say_v 〈◊〉_d josuah_n a_o man_n qualify_v above_o the_o ordinary_a rank_n i_o will_v not_o leave_v nor_o forsake_v thou_o josuah_n 1.5_o yet_o the_o promise_n employ_v in_o this_o text_n be_v general_a and_o common_a to_o all_o 〈◊〉_d person_n hebr._n 13.5_o thus_o you_o confirm_v the_o jesuit●_n ●olution_n in_o lieu_n of_o confute_v thereof_o for_o as_o the_o pro●ise_n i_o will_v not_o leave_v thou_o make_v particular_o unto_o jo●ue_n in_o regard_n he_o be_v a_o just_a man_n do_v not_o agree_v unto_o ●ll_a man_n but_o only_o unto_o such_o as_o josue_n be_v to_o wit_n ●nto_o just_a man_n and_o such_o as_o seek_v god_n as_o he_o do_v so_o the_o ●ext_n of_o s._n paul_n they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v thou_o wise_a unto_o valuation_n speak_v particular_o unto_o timothy_n in_o re●ard_n he_o be_v learn_v judicious_a aforehand_o instruct_v &_o ground_v in_o christian_a tradition_n do_v agree_v only_o to_o timothy_n and_o such_o man_n as_o timothy_n be_v to_o wit_n man_n aforehand_o teach_v and_o ground_v in_o the_o ●ayth_n of_o tradition_n on_o the_o other_o side_n as_o the_o promise_n ●ade_v to_o josue_n in_o regard_n he_o be_v a_o just_a man_n can_v ●e_v challenge_v of_o other_o man_n that_o be_v not_o just_a as_o he_o be_v &_o if_o they_o rely_v thereon_o they_o deceive_v themselves_o ●o_o the_o promise_n the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v
this_o place_n by_o cog_a in_o your_o own_o conceit_n as_o it_o be_v the_o very_a text_n to_o wit_n that_o our_o saviour_n by_o these_o word_n give_v a_o command_n to_o use_v scripture_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a he_o do_v not_o by_o way_n of_o command_n say_v to_o the_o jew_n search_v the_o scripture_n but_o by_o way_n of_o permission_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o obstinacy_n whereby_o they_o will_v not_o without_o scripture_n believe_v in_o he_o upon_o other_o most_o sufficient_a divine_a testimony_n so_o that_o search_v the_o scripture_n because_o in_o they_o you_o think_v to_o have_v eternal_a life_n have_v this_o sense_n see_v you_o will_v not_o be_v win_v to_o believe_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n nor_o of_o my_o miracle_n nor_o of_o my_o father_n voice_n from_o heaven_n but_o appeal_v from_o these_o testimony_n unto_o scripture_n think_v that_o in_o they_o you_o have_v eternal_a life_n search_v the_o scripture_n in_o god_n name_n i_o be_o content_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o superficial_o look_v upon_o they_o but_o search_v deep_o into_o they_o for_o be_v thus_o search_v into_o they_o yield_v testimony_n unto_o i_o certain_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v be_v of_o the_o protestant_n mind_n and_o will_v have_v give_v the_o precept_n they_o pretend_v he_o will_v not_o have_v say_v to_o the_o jew_n search_v the_o scripture_n because_o in_o they_o you_o think_v that_o you_o have_v eternal_a life_n but_o search_v the_o scripture_n because_o in_o they_o only_o eternal_a life_n be_v to_o be_v have_v or_o because_o nothing_o necessary_a unto_o eternal_a life_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v until_o it_o be_v clear_o prove_v by_o they_o this_o he_o do_v not_o say_v but_o rather_o rebuke_v the_o jew_n for_o this_o their_o ministerial_a conceit_n that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v upon_o any_o other_o testimony_n without_o scripture_n he_o do_v not_o therefore_o command_v they_o to_o use_v the_o scripture_n but_o see_v they_o obstinate_o addict_v unto_o only_a scripture_n he_o permit_v they_o to_o proceed_v in_o their_o own_o way_n even_o as_o when_o protestant_n can_v be_v win_v to_o believe_v neither_o the_o testimony_n of_o john_n that_o be_v the_o consent_n of_o father_n nor_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n work_n that_o be_v of_o miracle_n do_v daily_o in_o his_o church_n nor_o the_o father_n lively_a voice_n from_o heaven_n that_o be_v god_n word_n unwritten_a we_o at_o last_o say_v unto_o they_o search_v the_o scripture_n for_o even_o they_o give_v testimony_n unto_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n hence_o two_o thing_n appear_v first_o that_o your_o two_o assertion_n that_o christ_n say_v search_n the_o scripture_n do_v command_v and_o command_v even_o simple_a people_n to_o use_v scripture_n be_v two_o fancy_n of_o your_o own_o foist_v into_o the_o scripture_n not_o by_o way_n of_o interpretation_n but_o by_o way_n of_o historical_a relation_n of_o the_o sacred_a text_n which_o be_v gross_a abuse_n thereof_o second_o that_o if_o we_o search_v deep_o into_o this_o text_n search_v the_o scripture_n the_o same_o do_v clear_o condemn_v the_o protestant_a fancy_n that_o only_a scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o show_v this_o to_o have_v be_v the_o ground_n and_o principle_n of_o jewish_a infidelity_n the_o text_n matth._n 24.24_o that_o even_o the_o elect_v be_v deceive_v be_v it_o possible_a gross_o apply_v thus_o you_o write_v pag._n 586._o although_o the_o tradition_n and_o teach_v of_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a yet_o unlearned_a people_n where_o they_o enjoy_v the_o free_a use_n of_o scripture_n as_o in_o ancient_a time_n all_o people_n do_v and_o if_o they_o be_v careful_a of_o their_o salvation_n and_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n god_n bless_v his_o own_o ordinance_n and_o ordinary_o assi_v they_o by_o grace_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v seduce_v to_o damnation_n math._n 24.24_o thus_o you_o encourage_v simple_a people_n to_o be_v proud_a and_o obstinate_a in_o their_o private_a fancy_n against_o the_o teach_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n for_o in_o this_o speech_n you_o assure_v they_o that_o read_v their_o vulgar_a bible_n if_o they_o be_v careful_a of_o their_o salvation_n and_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n though_o they_o will_v not_o regard_v the_o church_n as_o the_o pillar_n ground_n and_o infallible_a mistress_n of_o truth_n yet_o god_n will_v so_o bless_v and_o assist_v they_o as_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v seduce_v into_o damnable_a error_n now_o what_o be_v the_o bane_n of_o christianity_n but_o this_o false_a and_o proud_a persuasion_n insert_v into_o the_o head_n of_o sot_n trinitarian_n anabaptist_n arian_n brownist_n familian_n do_v they_o not_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o truth_n who_o to_o that_o end_n so_o studious_o peruse_v their_o bible_n be_v they_o not_o careful_a of_o their_o salvation_n that_o go_v so_o ready_o to_o the_o fire_n rather_o than_o abandon_v the_o doctrine_n which_o by_o their_o skill_n in_o the_o vulgar_a bible_n they_o judge_v to_o be_v the_o save_a truth_n in_o these_o wretch_n you_o may_v see_v how_o in_o man_n desirous_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n god_n bless_v the_o ordinance_n of_o read_v the_o vulgar_a bible_n without_o regard_n have_v to_o the_o church_n as_o a_o infallible_a mistress_n and_o as_o your_o doctrine_n be_v the_o seed_n &_o springe_n of_o heresy_n so_o be_v the_o text_n of_o scripture_n matth._n 24.24_o most_o violent_o draw_v to_o confirm_v it_o for_o what_o say_v the_o text_n they_o the_o false_a prophet_n shall_v do_v great_a sign_n &_o wonder_n that_o even_o the_o elect_v be_v induce_v into_o error_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a by_o which_o text_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o elect_a people_n of_o god_n can_v be_v final_o entrap_v in_o damnable_a error_n this_o be_v understand_v as_o divine_v speak_v in_o sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la that_o be_v they_o can_v be_v deceive_v because_o god_n ordain_v and_o foresee_v that_o they_o shall_v use_v the_o mean_n to_o know_v save_v truth_n which_o mean_n be_v to_o cleave_v unto_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o trust_v their_o own_o skill_n now_o then_o with_o what_o engine_n can_v you_o from_o this_o truth_n wrest_v your_o paradox_n that_o man_n desirous_a of_o the_o truth_n read_v the_o vulgar_a bible_n can_v be_v damn_v be_v all_o man_n desirous_a of_o the_o truth_n that_o read_v the_o bible_n god_n elect_a if_o heretic_n dispute_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o elect_n can_v be_v seduce_v unto_o damnation_n ergo_fw-la if_o they_o presume_v on_o their_o skill_n in_o the_o bible_n not_o respect_v the_o church_n doctrine_n as_o infallible_a they_o shall_v not_o be_v seduce_v unto_o damnation_n why_o may_v not_o murderer_n argue_v in_o like_a sort_n the_o elect_a can_v be_v damn_v therefore_o if_o they_o commit_v murder_v every_o day_n and_o so_o persevere_v until_o the_o end_n they_o can_v be_v damn_v this_o argument_n be_v as_o good_a as_o you_o for_o the_o contemner_n of_o the_o church_n can_v no_o more_o be_v save_v they_o murderer_n if_o our_o saviour_n say_v true_a who_o so_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n the_o text_n act._n 17.11_o about_o the_o beroean_n abuse_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n of_o encourage_v simple_a people_n to_o follow_v their_o fancy_n get_v by_o read_v their_o vulgar_a bible_n you_o say_v pag._n ●87_n unlearned_a people_n by_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o scripture_n may_v certain_o know_v whether_o it_o err_v or_o not_o act._n 17.11_o thus_o you_o what_o say_v the_o text_n that_o thence_o you_o may_v make_v such_o deduction_n these_o be_v more_o noble_a than_o those_o of_o thessalonica_n who_o receive_v the_o word_n with_o all_o readiness_n of_o mind_n search_v daily_o whether_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o now_o behold_v your_o manifold_a abuse_n of_o this_o sacred_a narration_n first_o the_o text_n do_v not_o say_v these_o beroean_n be_v unlearned_a how_o then_o can_v you_o hence_o conclude_v any_o thing_n for_o the_o ability_n of_o unlearned_a people_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n again_o the_o text_n do_v not_o say_v that_o by_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n with_o scripture_n they_o come_v to_o know_v certain_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n be_v true_a but_o only_o that_o believe_v his_o doctrine_n they_o search_v the_o scripture_n about_o the_o same_o without_o mention_n of_o the_o success_n of_o their_o search_n and_o if_o they_o be_v resolve_v by_o scripture_n this_o be_v only_o in_o one_o point_n to_o wit_n whether_o jesus_n be_v the_o messiah_n about_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v clear_a and_o express_v how_o they_o can_v you_o hence_o prove_v that_o unlearned_a people_n may_v know_v certain_o whether_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v true_a by_o compare_v the_o same_o
for_o they_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o she_o have_v no_o milk_n in_o her_o two_o breast_n but_o write_v doctrine_n but_o he_o say_v she_o two_o breast_n be_v the_o two_o testament_n of_o divine_a scripture_n hence_o you_o may_v gather_v that_o in_o each_o of_o her_o breast_n in_o each_o of_o the_o testament_n the_o milk_n of_o scripture_n be_v contain_v but_o that_o only_o the_o milk_n of_o write_a doctrine_n be_v in_o they_o contain_v you_o can_v from_o this_o text_n true_o cite_v infer_v &_o therefore_o both_o by_o addition_n and_o transposition_n of_o word_n you_o help_v the_o dice_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n have_v no_o credit_n or_o authority_n but_o from_o scripture_n and_o that_o though_o this_o tradition_n may_v be_v false_a yet_o faith_n will_v subsist_v because_o there_o remain_v always_o a_o high_a and_o more_o sovereign_a judge_n to_o wit_n god_n speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v this_o i_o say_v you_o c_o you_o pag._n 90._o in_o margin_n lit_fw-fr c_o cite_v this_o text_n of_o intellectus_fw-la of_o augustin_n lib._n 11._o 〈◊〉_d faust._n c._n ●_o tanquam_fw-la in_o sede_fw-la qu●dam_fw-la in_o sublimi_fw-la collocata_fw-la est_fw-la cvi_fw-la serui●t_fw-la omnis_fw-la fidelis_n &_o pius_fw-la intellectus_fw-la s._n augustine_n it_o be_v place_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o high_a throne_n of_o authority_n unto_o which_o every_o faithful_a and_o pious_a understanding_n must_v be_v subject_a what_o be_v this_o why_o do_v you_o not_o name_v it_o because_o you_o dare_v not_o set_v down_o the_o word_n that_o immediate_o precede_v which_o make_v clear_o against_o you_o to_o wit_v these_o etc._n these_o excellentia_fw-la canonical_a authoritatis_fw-la veteris_fw-la &_o novi_fw-la testamenti_fw-la apo●stolorun_n confirmata_fw-la temporibus_fw-la per_fw-la successiones_n episcoporun_n &_o propagationes_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la tanquam_fw-la in_o sede_fw-la quadam_fw-la sublimiter_n constituta_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o canonical_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n confirm_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n be_v by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o propagation_n of_o church_n place_v in_o a_o high_a throne_n of_o authority_n etc._n etc._n how_o direct_o be_v this_o testimony_n of_o s._n augustine_n against_o that_o which_o you_o will_v prove_v thereby_o how_o have_v tradition_n no_o credit_n or_o authority_n but_o from_o scripture_n if_o the_o scripture_n by_o successive_a tradition_n of_o bishop_n hand_n so_o hand_n from_o the_o apostle_n have_v get_v quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la in_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n the_o high_a seat_n of_o divine_a authority_n to_o be_v honour_v as_o god_n word_n unto_o which_o every_o man_n must_v yield_v if_o this_o successive_a tradition_n on_o which_o as_o s._n augustine_n teach_v our_o persuasion_n about_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n depend_v be_v make_v weak_a &_o fallible_a by_o protestant_n how_o shall_v the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o keep_v her_o credit_n and_o authority_n in_o our_o faith_n very_o it_o can_v except_o christian_n will_v cease_v to_o rely_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v and_o on_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o hunt_v after_o divine_a and_o apostolical_a scripture_n by_o the_o send_v and_o smell_v of_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v therein_o as_o you_o do_v likewise_o by_o addition_n of_o the_o particle_n only_o you_o falsify_v the_o say_n of_o lit_fw-fr of_o pag._n 95._o lin_v 31._o &_o in_o marg._n lit_fw-fr paschasius_fw-la for_o whereas_o he_o promittit_fw-la he_o paschas_fw-la in_o matth._n c._n 28._o cum_fw-la electis_fw-la semper_fw-la adfuturum_fw-la se_fw-la promittit_fw-la say_v christ_n promise_v to_o be_v with_o his_o elect_n all_o day_n until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n you_o cite_v he_o as_o say_v only_o with_o the_o elect_a more_o gross_o in_o the_o same_o place_n you_o falsify_v druthmarus_n for_o whereas_o matth._n whereas_o in_o cap._n 28._o matth._n he_o say_v christ_n be_v with_o the_o reprobate_n by_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o godhead_n but_o with_o the_o elect_a in_o another_o manner_n you_o make_v he_o say_v christ_n promise_v to_o be_v only_o with_o the_o elect_a contrary_a to_o his_o meaning_n who_o teach_v that_o the_o presence_n and_o perpetual_a assistance_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v so_o unite_v unto_o his_o church_n &_o her_o pastor_n that_o they_o may_v not_o err_v but_o still_o teach_v all_o that_o he_o command_v but_o that_o presence_n whereof_o that_o text_n proper_o speak_v be_v not_o only_o afford_v unto_o the_o elect_n but_o unto_o wicked_a man_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o worthy_a communicant_n as_o yourself_o 14._o yourself_o pag._n 52._o lin_v 14._o affirm_v you_o 105._o you_o see_v pag._n 105._o rail_v bitter_o against_o the_o jesuit_n for_o prove_v that_o your_o protestant_a church_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n nor_o part_n thereof_o because_o you_o sever_v yourselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o do_v not_o join_v unto_o any_o preexistent_a christian_a society_n of_o pastor_n but_o apart_v yourselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o this_o his_o argument_n you_o rail_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o a_o whole_a leaf_n pag._n 106._o and_o 107._o where_o thus_o you_o conclude_v your_o foul_a foliall_a inuective_n they_o since_o their_o synod_n of_o trent_n have_v proceed_v from_o evil_a to_o worse_o this_o worse_o the_o minister_n in_o proof_n of_o all_o this_o bring_v nothing_o only_o in_o the_o margin_n he_o name_v the_o massacre_n of_o paris_n be_v that_o do_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v that_o prove_v obscure_v and_o outface_v of_o truth_n have_v not_o the_o protestant_n then_o slay_v be_v traitor_n against_o their_o king_n be_v not_o the_o king_n inform_v of_o their_o plot_n to_o murd●r_v he_o his_o mother_n his_o brethren_n &_o the_o cheief_a of_o his_o noble_n if_o to_o prevent_v his_o own_o instant_a death_n the_o king_n do_v by_o martial_a law_n without_o juridical_a form_n proceed_v against_o know_a rebel_n i●_n this_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o you_o may_v say_v it_o surpass_v all_o perfidious_a stratagem_n and_o immane_a cruelty_n of_o infidel_n what_o idle_a eloquence_n be_v this_o obscure_v &_o outface_v the_o truth_n with_o forgery_n and_o sophistry_n they_o have_v conspire_v against_o kingdom_n and_o state_n they_o have_v surpass_v profess_v infidel_n in_o perfidious_a stratagem_n and_o immane_a cruelty_n and_o whereas_o they_o expel_v we_o by_o excommunication_n and_o chase_v we_o away_o from_o they_o by_o persecution_n yet_o this_o roman_a advocate_n tax_v we_o with_o schism_n &_o apostasy_n never_o remember_v what_o 1._o what_o lib._n 5._o the_o baptism_n c._n 1._o s._n augustine_n long_o since_o deliver_v the_o sacrilege_n of_o schism_n be_v then_o commit_v when_o there_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n thus_o by_o long_o continue_v fierce_a bitter_a blast_n of_o false_a reproach_n you_o dirive_v your_o unwary_a reader_n upon_o the_o hide_a rock_n of_o a_o falsifyed_a sentence_n of_o s._n aug._n as_o though_o this_o most_o divine_a doctor_n have_v insinuate_v the_o lawfullnes_n of_o revolt_n &_o separation_n from_o all_o christian_a church_n what_o can_v be_v more_o false_a he_o dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n who_o have_v sever_v themselves_o from_o the_o christian_a world_n pretend_v that_o caecilian_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n &_o other_o catholic_n have_v give_v up_o the_o holy_a bibles_n to_o the_o fire_n s._n aug._n do_v convince_v they_o of_o schism_n two_o way_n first_o because_o this_o pretence_n be_v it_o true_a be_v not_o just_a for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o of_o begin_v a_o new_a distinct_a christian_a church_n these_o be_v his_o word_n etc._n word_n augustin_n ep_v 48._o ad_fw-la vincent_n fieri_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la ut_fw-la aliqui_fw-la iustam_fw-la causam_fw-la habeant_fw-la qua_fw-la communionem_fw-la svam_fw-la separent_fw-la à_fw-la communione_fw-la orbis_n terrarum_fw-la eamue_fw-la appellent_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la christi_fw-la quòd_fw-la se_fw-la just_a ab_fw-la omnium_fw-la gentium_fw-la communione_fw-la separaverint_fw-la ibid._n nos_fw-la ideo_fw-la certi_fw-la sumus_fw-la neminem_fw-la se_fw-la à_fw-la communione_fw-la omnium_fw-la gentium_fw-la iu●●è_fw-la separare_fw-la potuisse_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o be_v certain_a that_o none_o can_v just_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o again_o it_o be_v no_o way_n possible_a that_o any_o shall_v have_v reason_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o so_o term_v themselves_o the_o church_n because_o upon_o just_a cause_n they_o have_v divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o society_n of_o all_o nation_n thus_o s._n aug._n what_o can_v be_v more_o direct_a against_o that_o doctrine_n for_o which_o you_o cite_v he_o or_o more_o efficacious_a to_o conclude_v that_o you_o protestant_n be_v guilty_a of_o damnable_a schism_n second_o say_v
●f_n his_o spirit_n inward_o move_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o adhere_v unto_o a_o infallible_a external_a ground_n of_o assurance_n propose_v unto_o he_o god_n by_o the_o help_n of_o his_o grace_n make_v he_o apprehend_v divine_o of_o the_o authority_n thereof_o this_o second_o manner_n of_o inward_a assurance_n be_v ordinary_o give_v unto_o every_o christian_a without_o 6._o without_o triden_n sess_v 6._o can._n 3._o arausican_n 2._o can._n 6._o which_o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o believe_v supernatural_o and_o as_o he_o ought_v unto_o salvation_n the_o first_o manner_n of_o assurance_n be_v extraordinary_a and_o immediate_a revelation_n such_o as_o the_o prophet_n have_v wherefore_o protestant_n if_o they_o callenge_v this_o first_o manner_n of_o inward_a teach_n &_o assurance_n they_o approve_v enthusiasm_n &_o immediate_a revelation_n which_o in_o the_o swenkfeldian_o they_o seem_v to_o condemn_v if_o they_o challenge_v only_o the_o second_o manner_n of_o inward_a teach_n and_o assurance_n then_o beside_o inward_a light_n they_o must_v assign_v a_o external_a sufficient_a ground_n why_o they_o believe_v these_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n &_o then_o i_o ask_v what_o ground_n this_o be_v beside_o tradition_n second_o they_o will_v object_v that_o though_o they_o have_v no_o infallible_a ground_n beside_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o teach_v immediate_o in_o prophetical_a manner_n because_o they_o be_v also_o teach_v by_o a_o external_a probable_a motive_n to_o wit_v the_o church_n tradition_n i_o answer_v that_o except_o they_o assign_v a_o external_a infallible_a mean_n beside_o god_n inward_a teach_n they_o can_v avoid_v but_o they_o challenge_v immediate_a revelation_n for_o whosoever_o know_v thing_n assure_o by_o the_o inward_a teach_n of_o the_o spirit_n without_o a_o external_a infallible_a motive_n unto_o which_o he_o do_v adhere_v be_v assure_v prophetical_o though_o he_o have_v some_o external_a probable_a motive_n so_o to_o think_v s._n peter_n have_v some_o conjectural_a sign_n of_o simon_n magus_n his_o perversity_n &_o incorrigible_a malice_n yet_o see_v esse_fw-la see_v act._n 8.32_o in_o felle_fw-la amaritudinis_fw-la &_o obligatione_fw-la peccati_fw-la video_fw-la te_fw-la esse_fw-la he_o know_v it_o assure_o we_o believe_v he_o know_v it_o by_o the_o light_n of_o prophesy_n because_o beside_o inward_a assurance_n he_o have_v no_o external_a infallible_a ground_n if_o one_o see_v a_o man_n give_v public_o alm_n though_o he_o perceive_v probable_a token_n &_o sign_n that_o he_o do_v it_o out_o of_o a_o vayneglorious_a intention_n yet_o can_v he_o be_v sure_a thereof_o but_o by_o the_o light_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n because_o the_o other_o token_n be_v not_o ground_n sufficient_a to_o make_v he_o sure_o for_o if_o a_o man_n be_v sure_a &_o have_v no_o ground_n of_o this_o assurance_n in_o any_o thing_n out_o of_o his_o own_o hart_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o he_o be_v assure_v immediate_o &_o only_o by_o god_n inward_a speak_v wherefore_o protestant_n if_o they_o will_v disclaim_v in_o truth_n and_o not_o in_o word_n only_o from_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o teach_n they_o must_v either_o grant_v tradition_n to_o be_v infallible_a or_o else_o assign_v some_o external_a infallible_a ground_n beside_o tradition_n whereby_o they_o be_v teach_v what_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n deliver_v three_o they_o will_v say_v they_o know_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o a_o external_a infallible_a ground_n beside_o tradition_n to_o wit_n by_o certain_a light_n lustre_n evidence_n of_o truth_n which_o they_o see_v to_o blaze_v &_o emane_n from_o the_o thing_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n by_o which_o they_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o be_v heavenly_a i_o answer_v if_o they_o do_v see_v such_o lustre_n and_o light_n that_o clear_o &_o not_o only_o probable_o convince_v the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v heavenly_a truth_n they_o be_v not_o indeed_o assure_v by_o immediate_a dark_a revelation_n but_o by_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o heavenly_a knowledge_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o supernatural_a light_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n believe_v which_o be_v a_o paradox_n and_o pretence_n far_o more_o false_a and_o sensible_o absurd_a then_o be_v the_o challenge_n of_o immediate_a revelation_n or_o enthusiasm_n as_o have_v be_v show_v wherefore_o see_v that_o god_n have_v choose_v no_o external_a mean_n beside_o catholic_a tradition_n to_o make_v man_n know_v perpetual_o until_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n what_o doctrine_n &_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n publish_v it_o be_v clear_a unto_o every_o christian_a that_o this_o be_v the_o mean_n by_o he_o choose_v &_o which_o he_o do_v assist_v that_o it_o can_v be_v obnoxious_a unto_o error_n so_o that_o precedent_o and_o independent_o of_o scripture_n the_o catholic_a tradition_n of_o christian_a pastor_n &_o father_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v infallible_a through_o divine_a special_a assistance_n and_o therefore_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o faith_n infallible_a assurance_n the_o four_o principle_n prove_v §._o 6._o if_o we_o be_v resolve_v that_o save_v truth_n be_v that_o which_o god_n reveal_v that_o he_o reveal_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n publish_v the_o doctrine_n publish_v by_o then_o the_o catholic_a christian_a tradition_n our_o search_n be_v end_v when_o we_o have_v find_v the_o christian_a catholic_a church_n here_o the_o four_o enemy_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n offer_v himself_o to_o wit_n the_o wilful_a ignorant_a these_o kind_n of_o man_n not_o only_o hold_v against_o pagan_n the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n to_o be_v that_o only_o which_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n against_o jew_n the_o reveal_v of_o god_n to_o be_v only_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o in_o word_n they_o condemn_v the_o heretic_n &_o profess_v that_o no_o doctrine_n be_v true_o apostolical_a but_o the_o catholic_n yet_o in_o resolve_v what_o doctrine_n be_v the_o catholic_a they_o follow_v the_o partiality_n of_o their_o affection_n these_o be_v term_v by_o 1._o by_o de_fw-fr util_fw-la cred_a c._n 1._o s._n augustine_n credentes_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la believer_n of_o heretic_n build_v upon_o the_o seem_a learning_n and_o sanctity_n of_o some_o man_n be_v therein_o so_o wilful_a as_o to_o venture_v their_o soul_n that_o such_o doctrine_n be_v catholic_a not_o care_v nor_o know_v what_o they_o say_v nor_o what_o the_o word_n catholic_a put_v into_o the_o creed_n by_o the_o apostle_n do_v import_v some_o be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o think_v that_o the_o word_n catholic_a do_v signify_v the_o same_o as_o conform_v unto_o scripture_n and_o so_o what_o doctrine_n be_v catholic_a they_o resolve_v by_o the_o light_n and_o lustre_n of_o the_o doctrine_n or_o by_o the_o in_o ward_n teach_v of_o the_o spirit_n whereby_o they_o fall_v upon_o the_o principle_n of_o heresy_n and_o become_v not_o so_o much_o believer_n of_o heretic_n as_o heretic_n some_o understand_v by_o the_o word_n catholic_a doctrine_n true_o catholic_a that_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o christian_a world_n of_o father_n unto_o christian_a world_n of_o child_n yet_o be_v so_o blind_a as_o to_o give_v this_o title_n unto_o sect_n late_o spring_v up_o which_o through_o pretend_a singular_a illumination_n get_v by_o peruse_v the_o scripture_n have_v choose_v form_n of_o faith_n opposite_a one_o against_o another_o reform_v against_o the_o form_n to_o they_o deliver_v by_o their_o ancestor_n these_o sect_n i_o say_v they_o term_v catholic_a which_o not_o to_o be_v catholic_a in_o this_o sense_n be_v as_o evident_a as_o that_o night_n be_v not_o day_n some_o through_o wilful_a ignorance_n no_o less_o gross_o divide_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a according_a to_o the_o division_n of_o country_n name_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n etc._n etc._n which_o speech_n have_v no_o more_o sense_n than_o this_o a_o fashion_n ever_o since_o christ_n universal_o over_o the_o world_n new_o begin_v and_o proper_a unto_o england_n against_o this_o enemy_n true_a religion_n be_v resolve_v in_o this_o four_o principle_n the_o catholic_a tradition_n of_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o roman_n by_o roman_a we_o understand_v not_o only_o the_o religion_n profess_v within_o the_o city_n &_o diocese_n of_o rome_n but_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o they_o that_o any_o where_fw-mi acknowledge_v the_o primacy_n of_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n which_o now_o be_v the_o roman_a bishop_n about_o this_o principle_n faith_n be_v assure_v by_o a_o four_o perfection_n belong_v unto_o god_n as_o he_o be_v prime_a verity_n reveal_v truth_n which_o be_v that_o he_o can_v permit_v that_o the_o know_v of_o save_v doctrine_n be_v impossible_a hence_o i_o argue_v god_n be_v prime_a verity_n reveal_v can_v permit_v the_o mean_n of_o know_v his_o save_a truth_n to_o be_v hide_v nor_o a_o false_a mean_n to_o
of_o waldo_n wickliff_n and_o husse_n fabulae_fw-la sunt_fw-la they_o be_v fable_n you_o turn_v as_o by_o he_o speak_v of_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o roman_a church_n the_o pharisee_n do_v indeed_o corrupt_a scripture_n but_o how_o by_o logical_a deduction_n out_o of_o the_o same_o according_a to_o your_o protestant_a and_o the_o common_a heretical_a fashion_n pretend_v great_a skill_n than_o all_o their_o ancestor_n that_o they_o do_v affirm_v that_o their_o special_a observation_n be_v tradition_n unwritten_a from_o moses_n the_o scripture_n have_v not_o a_o word_n yea_o the_o thing_n they_o most_o of_o all_o object_v against_o our_o saviour_n be_v the_o write_a tradition_n of_o moses_n about_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n day_n joan._n 7._o from_o which_o precept_n not_o by_o tradition_n unwritten_a but_o by_o logical_a inference_n they_o conclude_v that_o our_o lord_n break_v the_o sabboth-day_n by_o heal_a disease_a person_n thereon_o so_o that_o pharasaicall_a tradition_n be_v never_o so_o much_o as_o pretend_v to_o be_v doctrine_n unwritten_a as_o you_o imagine_v but_o to_o be_v doctrine_n conclude_v from_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o reason_n and_o logic_n just_a according_a to_o your_o protestant_a pretence_n also_o what_o you_o say_v that_o the_o father_n tradition_n unwritten_a be_v not_o our_o doctrine_n but_o you_o be_v speak_v because_o you_o will_v have_v man_n so_o think_v though_o they_o err_v not_o because_o you_o can_v think_v the_o same_o to_o be_v so_o in_o truth_n for_o thus_o i_o argue_v against_o this_o your_o silly_a shift_n the_o father_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o word_n understand_v by_o tradition_n apostolical_a unwritten_a dogmata_fw-la quae_fw-la peti_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la è_fw-la sacra_fw-la scriptura_fw-la doctrine_n of_o faith_n that_o can_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n with_o such_o certitude_n as_o they_o may_v thereupon_o be_v believe_v as_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o you_o pretend_v and_o glory_n that_o all_o your_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v ex_fw-la sacris_fw-la scripture_n petitae_fw-la so_o draw_v and_o gather_v from_o holy_a scripture_n as_o they_o be_v believe_v as_o faith_n only_o upon_o this_o rule_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v great_a vanity_n for_o you_o to_o say_v that_o the_o father_n by_o apostolical_a tradition_n unwritten_a understand_v the_o doctrine_n not_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o of_o your_o protestant_a separation_n and_o if_o from_o generality_n upon_o which_o minister_n who_o drift_n be_v to_o deceyve_v do_v willing_o dwell_v we_o descend_v to_o particular_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o you_o reject_v those_o doctrine_n &_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o fabulous_a dream_n and_o human_a invention_n which_o the_o father_n express_o and_o in_o term_n affirm_v to_o be_v apostolical_a tradition_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a decease_a protestant_n esteem_v fabulous_a the_o pop._n the_o the_o chrys._n homil_n 69._o ad_fw-la pop._n father_n affirm_v it_o be_v ab_fw-la apostolis_n sancitum_fw-la ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o bind_n of_o the_o cleargyman_n and_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a ministry_n to_o single_a life_n and_o from_o woo_v &_o wive_n do_v not_o protestant_n detest_v as_o impious_a 2._o impious_a impious_a council_n carthag_n can._n 2._o yet_o the_o father_n say_v haec_fw-la docu●runt_fw-la apostoli_fw-la haec_fw-la seruavit_fw-la antiquitas_fw-la this_o the_o apostle_n teach_v this_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o ancient_n that_o it_o be_v damnable_a sin_n for_o votary_n to_o marry_v after_o their_o vow_n do_v not_o protestant_n contemn_v as_o a_o fabulous_a invention_n &_o yet_o 61._o yet_o yet_o epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 61._o the_o father_n say_v tradiderunt_fw-la sancti_fw-la dei_fw-la apostoli_fw-la this_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n of_o god_n the_o custom_n of_o make_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n on_o the_o forehead_n protestant_n deride_v as_o foolish_a 27._o foolish_a foolish_a basil._n the_o spirit_n sanct._n c._n 27._o yet_o the_o father_n affirm_v hoc_fw-la tradiderunt_fw-la patres_fw-la nostri_fw-la in_o silentio_fw-la sine_fw-la literis_fw-la it_o be_v teach_v by_o our_o father_n the_o apostle_n in_o silent_a tradition_n without_o writing_n the_o fast_a of_o lent_n be_v it_o not_o in_o neglect_n and_o derision_n with_o protestant_n &_o yet_o the_o montan._n the_o the_o hieron_n epist._n ad_fw-la marcell_n de_fw-fr erroribus_fw-la montan._n father_n say_v as_o we_o do_v quadragesiman_n semel_fw-la in_o anno_fw-la ex_fw-la apostolica_fw-la traditione_n ieiunamus_fw-la we_o fast_o one_o lent_n a_o year_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o protestant_n also_o scorn_v the_o feast_n of_o ember-week_n four_o time_n in_o the_o year_n and_o yet_o the_o pentecost_n the_o the_o leo_fw-la de_fw-fr ieiunio_fw-la sexti_fw-la mensis_fw-la &_o serm._n 6._o de_fw-fr pentecost_n father_n say_v ex_fw-la apostolica_fw-la traditione_n seruantur_fw-la they_o be_v receyve_v by_o apostolical_a tradition_n to_o fast_o one_o friday_n or_o the_o sixth_o day_n of_o the_o week_n in_o memory_n of_o our_o saviour_n passion_n protestant_n condemn_v as_o superstitious_a yet_o 75._o yet_o yet_o epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 75._o the_o father_n say_v hoc_fw-la decreverunt_fw-la apostoli_fw-la the_o apostle_n make_v this_o decree_n and_o the_o church_n by_o tradition_n from_o they_o have_v perpetual_o observe_v it_o the_o make_n and_o bless_v of_o holy_a water_n do_v not_o protestant_n reject_v as_o magical_a yet_o the_o 27._o the_o the_o basil._n the_o spir_n san_fw-it c._n 27._o father_n say_v express_o it_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o mingle_v water_n with_o wine_n in_o the_o chalice_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v think_v by_o protestant_n to_o be_v fabulous_a but_o by_o the_o father_n 3._o father_n father_n cyprian_a lib._n 1._o ep._n 3._o dominica_n institutio_fw-la the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o tradition_n unwritten_a derive_v to_o us._n luther_n dare_v to_o cast_v off_o with_o a_o jest_n the_o commandment_n not_o to_o receive_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n but_o fast_v that_o so_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v enter_v in_o at_o our_o mouth_n before_o other_o meat_n 6._o meat_n meat_n aug._n ep._n 118_o ad_fw-la januar_n c._n 6._o yet_o the_o father_n say_v hoc_fw-la placuit_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la christus_fw-la per_fw-la apostolos_fw-la disposuit_fw-la it_o please_v the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o shall_v be_v so_o and_o by_o his_o inspiration_n the_o apostle_n do_v so_o appoint_v what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o regulam_fw-la of_o of_o aug._n lib._n 4._o in_o julian._n &_o leo_fw-la primus_fw-la ep._n 14._o exorcizandi_fw-la sunt_fw-la secundum_fw-la apostolican_n regulam_fw-la exorcism_n &_o exsufflation_n use_v in_o baptism_n the_o traditam_fw-la the_o the_o origen_n homil._n 5._o in_o num._n a_o magno_fw-la pontifice_fw-la christo_fw-la &_o eius_fw-la filiis_fw-la apostolis_n traditam_fw-la form_n of_o interrogation_n answer_n and_o other_o ceremony_n that_o instituit_fw-la that_o that_o fabian_n ep._n 2._o ad_fw-la oriental_n christus_fw-la instituit_fw-la they_o that_o be_v baptize_v be_v afterward_o chrism_v with_o the_o oil_n of_o balm_n traditam_fw-la balm_n balm_n tertul._n li._n 1._o ad_fw-la ux_fw-la apostolica_fw-la praescriptio_fw-la epiphan_n haer_fw-mi 50._o propter_fw-la eminentiam_fw-la celebrationis_fw-la traditam_fw-la that_o they_o who_o have_v be_v marry_v more_o than_o once_o be_v not_o promote_v unto_o priesthood_n out_o of_o reverence_n unto_o that_o dignity_n voverant_fw-la dignity_n dignity_n aug._n lib._n 17._o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 4._o hoc_fw-la votum_fw-la illi_fw-la potentissimi_fw-la voverant_fw-la that_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o vow_n of_o religion_n perfection_n that_o exordium_n that_o that_o chrys._n homil_n 17._o ad_fw-la paph_n antiochen_n a_o christo_fw-la introducta_fw-la casian_n coenobitarum_fw-la disciplina_fw-la tempore_fw-la praedicationis_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la sumpserat_fw-la exordium_n monastical_a profession_n begin_v by_o their_o institution_n colimus_fw-la institution_n institution_n tertul._n de_fw-fr corona_n militis_fw-la anniversarios_n dies_fw-la colimus_fw-la the_o keep_a festival_n day_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n decease_v 1._o decease_v decease_v council_n antioc_n apostol_n citat_fw-la in_o 7._o synod_n act_n 1._o the_o place_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n in_o the_o church_n 7._o church_n church_n damascen_n orat_fw-la 4._o the_o imagine_v synod_n nicen_n 2._o act_n 7._o their_o worship_n mystagog_n worship_n worship_n aug._n serm._n 17._o de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la apost_n &_o cyril_n cathec_fw-la 5._o mystagog_n to_o commend_v ourselves_o unto_o the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n decease_v in_o the_o holy_a sacrifice_n of_o mass_n these_o thing_n protestant_n detest_v as_o superstition_n all_o which_o yet_o the_o father_n maintain_v to_o be_v apostolical_a tradition_n metamorphize_v the_o word_n profitable_a as_o to_o make_v it_o signify_v the_o same_o with_o the_o word_n sufficient_a which_o be_v very_o hard_a yet_o be_v the_o text_n much_o over-short_a to_o prove_v their_o intent_n that_o scripture_n alone_o
of_o the_o church_n disagree_v about_o matter_n which_o they_o preach_v as_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v their_o tradition_n and_o testimony_n be_v of_o credit_n therein_o or_o have_v any_o authority_n to_o persuade_v who_o will_v or_o can_v firm_o believe_v disagree_v witness_n upon_o their_o word_n and_o this_o truth_n this_o by_o this_o note_n protestant_n be_v convince_v not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o protestant_a church_n allow_v that_o dissonant_n doctrine_n be_v preach_v as_o her_o doctrine_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o truth_n of_o salvation_n she_o permit_v that_o her_o preacher_n condemn_v each_o other_o as_o heretic_n without_o disclaim_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o either_o side_n for_o she_o embrace_v in_o her_o communion_n both_o lutheran_n who_o preach_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o carnal_a manducation_n of_o christ_n true_a body_n by_o the_o wicked_a luther_n tom_n 3._o germ._n fol._n 264._o and_o caluinist_n who_o detest_v this_o carnal_a manducation_n as_o blasphemous_a and_o impious_a caluin_n admonit_fw-la 3._o ad_fw-la westphalum_fw-la but_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o church_n that_o allow_v of_o dissonant_n preach_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o how_o can_v she_o be_v the_o one_o true_a church_n which_o allow_v that_o doctrine_n she_o know_v to_o be_v false_a be_v preach_v as_o her_o religion_n &_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n the_o protestant_a church_n know_v that_o of_o contrary_a doctrine_n the_o one_o side_n must_v needs_o be_v false_a therefore_o consent_v that_o both_o side_n be_v preach_v as_o her_o faith_n &_o as_o save_v truth_n she_o yield_v that_o doctrine_n knowne_o false_a be_v preach_v as_o her_o doctrine_n and_o save_a truth_n and_o so_o be_v mistress_n of_o falsehood_n as_o much_o as_o of_o truth_n consent_n must_v be_v conspicuous_a and_o evident_a for_o if_o in_o outward_a appearance_n and_o show_n preacher_n dissent_v one_o from_o another_o in_o main_n &_o material_a doctrine_n their_o authority_n be_v craze_v and_o their_o testimony_n of_o no_o esteem_n howsoever_o perchance_o their_o dissension_n may_v be_v by_o some_o distinction_n so_o colour_v that_o one_o can_v reader_n can_v one_o can_v convince_v a_o obstinate_a gaynsayer_n &_o wrester_n of_o word_n but_o still_o he_o will_v wrangle_v yet_o may_v he_o be_v convince_v that_o he_o do_v falsify_v and_o wrong_v author_n in_o his_o interpretation_n and_o this_o evident_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o every_o indifferent_a reader_n convince_v he_o that_o will_v bold_o undertake_v to_o defend_v as_o 42_o as_o d._n field_n lib._n 3._o of_o the_o church_n cap._n 42_o doctor_n field_n undertake_v for_o protestant_n that_o their_o dissension_n be_v but_o verbal_a but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n do_v the_o accuse_a dissentioner_n allow_v this_o doctor_n reconciliation_n do_v they_o give_v over_o contention_n thereupon_o no_o but_o profess_v that_o such_o reconciler_n miss_v of_o their_o meaning_n &_o that_o they_o disagree_v substantial_o about_o the_o very_a prime_a article_n of_o faith_n how_o can_v these_o man_n be_v witness_n of_o credit_n for_o substantial_a article_n concern_v which_o there_o be_v open_o confess_v &_o profess_a dissension_n among_o they_o five_o i_o infer_v that_o this_o church_n be_v universal_a spread_v over_o all_o nation_n that_o she_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v every_o where_o moral_o where_o moral_o that_o be_v according_a unto_o common_a humane_a reputation_n by_o which_o a_o thing_n diffuse_v over_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n &_o famous_o know_v be_v say_v to_o be_v every_o where_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v renown_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n rom._n 1.12_o in_o this_o sort_n the_o church_n be_v still_o universal_a and_o every_o where_o by_o this_o be_v answer_v all_o the_o minister_n bring_v upon_o mistake_v of_o moral_o moral_o speak_v be_v so_o diffuse_v that_o the_o whole_a know_a world_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o she_o as_o of_o a_o worthy_a and_o credible_a witness_n of_o christian_a tradition_n howsoever_o her_o outward_a glory_n and_o splendour_n peace_n and_o tranquillity_n be_v sometime_o obscure_v in_o some_o place_n more_o or_o less_o and_o not_o ever_o in_o all_o place_n at_o once_o a_o truth_n so_o clear_a that_o it_o may_v be_v evident_o prove_v out_o of_o 34.37_o of_o the_o text_n apocalyps_n 20.8_o say_v they_o the_o pursevamt_n of_o antichrist_n go_v upon_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o compass_v about_o the_o camp_n of_o saint_n &_o belove_a city_n which_o place_n prove_v clear_o that_o the_o church_n and_o camp_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n this_o verse_n the_o minister_n mistake_v of_o purpose_n and_o in_o lieu_n thereof_o cit_v the_o seven_o and_o very_o absurd_o say_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v persecute_v christian_n that_o be_v put_v they_o in_o prison_n &_o kill_v they_o where_o they_o be_v not_o and_o protestant_n themselves_o affirm_v that_o even_o all_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v right_o famous_a &_o continue_v disperse_v over_o the_o world_n bullinger_n in_o apocal._n 20._o fulke_o against_o the_o rhem._n in_o thess._n 2._o sect_n 5._o whitaker_n answer_n to_o m._n reynols_n preface_n p_o 34.37_o scripture_n apoc._n 20._o v._o 8._o that_o even_o in_o antichrists_n day_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v visible_o universal_a for_o she_o shall_v they_o be_v every_o where_o persecute_v which_o can_v not_o be_v except_o she_o be_v every_o where_o visible_a &_o conspicuous_a even_o to_o the_o wicked_a the_o reason_n of_o this_o perpetual_a visible_a universality_n be_v because_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v the_o sole_a ordinary_a mean_n on_o which_o we_o ground_n faith_n for_o substantial_a point_n wherefore_o this_o tradition_n must_v be_v so_o deliver_v as_o it_o may_v be_v know_v to_o all_o man_n see_v god_n thereof_o god_n the_o minister_n say_v p._n 78._o l._n 22._o that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n save_v according_a to_o his_o antecedent_n will_v cite_v schoolman_n that_o say_v that_o god_n antecedent_n will_n be_v only_o a_o velleity_n a_o wish_n a_o complacence_n thence_o conclude_v that_o though_o god_n have_v antecedent_n will_v that_o all_o be_v save_v yet_o this_o do_v not_o infer_v that_o he_o always_o provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o i_o answer_v that_o god_n by_o his_o antecedent_n will_v of_o man_n salvation_n wish_v two_o thing_n first_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n second_o the_o mean_n of_o their_o salvation_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o mean_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v absolute_a that_o all_o man_n in_o some_o sort_n or_o other_o have_v sufficient_a mean_n of_o salvation_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o end_n to_o wit_n the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v not_o absolute_a but_o as_o schoolman_n say_v virtual_o conditional_a that_o be_v god_n have_v a_o will_n that_o all_o man_n be_v save_v as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o he_o if_o the_o course_n of_o his_o providence_n be_v not_o stop_v and_o man_n will_v cooperate_v with_o his_o grace_n whence_o i_o thus_o argue_v if_o god_n do_v not_o provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o all_o man_n it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v that_o on_o his_o part_n he_o wish_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o but_o even_o our_o minister_n pag._n 78._o lin_v 38._o grant_n that_o god_n wish_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n and_o of_o every_o individual_a person_n therefore_o god_n still_o make_v his_o church_n visible_o universal_a ut_fw-la neminem_fw-la lateat_fw-la as_o say_v s._n augustine_n that_o no_o man_n perish_v through_o the_o hiddennes_n and_o invisibility_n thereof_o will_v have_v all_o man_n without_o exception_n of_o any_o nation_n to_o be_v save_v &_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n 1._o tim._n 2.4_o but_o if_o the_o church_n be_v not_o still_o so_o diffuse_v in_o the_o world_n that_o all_o know_a church_n know_a the_o answerer_n write_v to_o his_o majesty_n &_o know_v the_o proverb_n sapienti_fw-la verbum_fw-la do_v intend_v by_o this_o word_n to_o insinuate_v how_o god_n provide_v mean_n of_o salvation_n for_o the_o world_n whereof_o one_o part_n be_v many_o age_n unknown_a the_o solution_n of_o this_o difficulty_n much_o urge_v by_o the_o minister_n pag._n 78_o consist_v in_o these_o point_n first_o god_n our_o saviour_n be_v bear_v and_o die_v in_o this_o know_a world_n provide_v that_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v still_o visible_o spread_v over_o the_o same_o &_o famous_o know_v second_o nation_n be_v not_o so_o unknown_a but_o by_o navigation_n and_o other_o such_o natural_a mean_n they_o may_v be_v discoveuer_v unto_o this_o world_n where_o our_o
teach_v it_o as_o christ_n command_v &_o deliver_v the_o same_o three_o if_o this_o promise_n be_v conditional_a &_o not_o absolute_a then_o by_o this_o place_n the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v prove_v to_o last_v absolute_o for_o ever_o but_o only_o so_o long_o as_o she_o christen_v aright_o &_o teach_v the_o truth_n wherein_o according_a to_o this_o protestant_a exposition_n she_o may_v fail_v but_o the_o father_n from_o this_o text_n gather_v against_o the_o donatist_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v never_o fail_v to_o be_v in_o all_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n until_o the_o end_n thereof_o as_o s._n aug._n in_o psalm_n 101._o conc_fw-fr 2._o leo_fw-la epist._n 3._o ad_fw-la pulcheriam_fw-la and_o other_o hence_o prove_v therefore_o the_o sense_n be_v absolute_a his_o church_n shall_v be_v still_o in_o the_o world_n &_o he_o still_o assist_v his_o church_n by_o his_o spirit_n to_o teach_v and_o baptize_v aright_o promise_n of_o wonderful_a comfort_n unto_o they_o that_o pawn_v their_o soul_n &_o salvation_n upon_o god_n word_n deliver_v by_o perpetual_a tradition_n for_o in_o this_o sentence_n appear_v the_o six_o thing_n i_o before_o set_v down_o first_o that_o there_o be_v still_o a_o christian_a church_n all_o day_n not_o want_v in_o the_o world_n so_o much_o as_o one_o day_n till_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n second_o this_o church_n be_v ever_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a for_o the_o church_n that_o always_o teach_v &_o christen_v all_o nation_n must_v needs_o be_v visible_a but_o this_o church_n always_o teach_v and_o christen_v all_o nation_n i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o not_o with_o you_o sit_v in_o corner_n or_o hide_v under_o ground_n but_o with_o you_o exercise_v the_o office_n enjoin_v you_o in_o the_o word_n precedent_n docete_fw-la omnes_fw-la gentes_fw-la baptizantes_fw-la three_o this_o church_n be_v ever_o apostolical_a for_o to_o his_o apostle_n christ_n say_v i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n not_o with_o you_o in_o your_o own_o person_n but_o with_o you_o in_o your_o successor_n in_o who_o you_o shall_v continue_v until_o the_o world_n end_n ergo_fw-la a_o lawful_a company_n of_o bishop_n pastor_n &_o doctor_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n must_v be_v perpetual_o in_o the_o world_n forthly_a this_o church_n be_v universal_a item_fw-la in_o mundum_fw-la universum_fw-la where_o i_o will_v be_v always_o with_o you_o five_o this_o church_n be_v one_o not_o divide_v into_o part_n because_o it_o teach_v and_o believe_v uniform_o all_o that_o christ_n deliver_v and_o command_v without_o faction_n sect_n or_o part_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n six_o this_o church_n be_v always_o holy_a for_o doctrine_n never_o deliver_v or_o teach_v any_o falsehood_n i_o who_o be_o the_o truth_n be_o always_o with_o you_o teach_v all_o nation_n holy_a also_o for_o life_n christ_n the_o holy_a of_o holye_n assist_v and_o make_v her_o able_a to_o convert_v infidel_n which_o she_o can_v not_o well_o do_v luther_n do_v the_o minister_n p._n 85._o &_o 86.102_o allege_v diverse_a father_n &_o scholman_n to_o prove_v that_o now_o miracle_n be_v cease_v &_o not_o necessary_a answer_n the_o minister_n shall_v distinguish_v as_o the_o father_n do_v who_o make_v two_o manner_n of_o being_n of_o miracle_n to_o wit_n ordinary_a &_o extraordinary_a and_o affirm_v three_o thing_n first_o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n miracle_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o plant_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o world_n joan._n 5.24_o act._n 4.29.30_o and_o then_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n be_v ordinary_o annex_v unto_o the_o ministry_n of_o preach_v yea_o so_o that_o every_o christian_a common_o have_v that_o gift_n in_o some_o kind_n or_o other_o 1._o cor._n 12.28_o act._n 8.17_o &_o 10._o 4.6_o second_o that_o since_o the_o plant_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o twelve_o fisherman_n this_o be_v the_o miracle_n of_o miracle_n no_o further_a miracle_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o man_n unto_o who_o this_o be_v know_v and_o therefore_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n be_v cease_v to_o be_v ordinary_o annex_v to_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v or_o common_a to_o all_o christian_n as_o before_o it_o be_v aug._n de_fw-fr civit._n l._n 22._o c._n 8._o gregor_n 27._o moral_n c._n 1._o three_o notwithstanding_o in_o all_o age_n there_o be_v be_v and_o shall_v ever_o be_v some_o special_a place_n and_o person_n extraordinary_o endue_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o christian_n conversion_n of_o some_o remote_a nation_n that_o know_v not_o the_o first_o miraculous_a plant_n of_o our_o religion_n by_o certain_a &_o celebrious_a fame_n &_o of_o miracle_n in_o this_o kind_a the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n &_o all_o christian_a history_n be_v full_a see_v s._n aug._n l._n 22._o de_fw-fr civit._n c._n 8._o &_o gregory_n in_o his_o dialogue_n the_o protestant_a church_n not_o before_o luther_n without_o miracle_n and_o token_n of_o wonderful_a sanctity_n at_o the_o least_o in_o she_o more_o eminent_a preacher_n that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n from_o &_o by_o which_o we_o be_v to_o receyve_v the_o tradition_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n §._o 5._o this_o ground_n be_v lay_v it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v the_o multitude_n of_o christian_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n cleave_v to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n the_o first_o argument_n there_o must_v always_o be_v in_o the_o world_n one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n that_o be_v a_o church_n deliver_v doctrine_n uniform_o thereby_o make_v they_o credible_a universal_o thereby_o make_v they_o famous_o know_v to_o mankind_n holy_o so_o make_v they_o certain_a &_o such_o as_o on_o they_o we_o may_v secure_o rely_v apostolical_o so_o make_v they_o perpetual_o flow_v without_o change_n unto_o the_o present_a christianity_n in_o the_o channel_n of_o a_o never-interrupted_n succession_n of_o bishopp_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o church_n 13._o church_n unto_o this_o argument_n the_o minister_n pag._n 104._o make_v answer_v that_o his_o protestant_a church_n be_v before_o luther_n in_o essence_n &_o kind_n though_o it_o begin_v in_o luther_n touch_v the_o name_n and_o some_o thing_n accidental_a in_o proof_n whereof_o he_o thus_o write_v in_o all_o age_n before_o luther_n some_o person_n hold_v the_o substantial_a article_n of_o our_o religion_n both_o in_o the_o roman_a &_o grecian_a church_n and_o by_o name_n the_o grecian_n maintain_v with_o we_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v no_o primacy_n of_o jurisdiction_n above_o or_o over_o all_o other_o church_n neither_o be_v the_o same_o infallible_a in_o faith_n they_o deny_v purgatory_n private_a mass_n sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o they_o propugne_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n in_o this_o western_a part_n of_o the_o world_n the_o waldense_n thaborites_n of_o bohemia_n wickliffi●ts_v mantayn_v the_o same_o doctrine_n in_o substance_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o some_o learned_a pontifician_n this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o all_o the_o minister_n have_v say_v or_o can_v say_v for_o his_o church_n before_o luther_n the_o same_o be_v insufficient_a false_a more_o for_o anabaptist_n than_o protestant_n this_o i_o prove_v in_o general_a this_o pedigree_n be_v insufficient_a for_o two_o reason_n first_o because_o it_o be_v not_o for_o all_o age_n the_o grecian_n be_v unite_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n until_o the_o year_n 1060._o the_o waldensian_o begin_v about_o the_o year_n 1160._o now_o there_o remain_v six_o or_o seven_o age_n since_o the_o pretend_a apostasy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o which_o the_o minister_n do_v not_o name_v any_o professor_n that_o be_v protestant_n for_o essence_n and_o kind_n second_o because_o protestant_n teach_v that_o the_o most_o substantial_a article_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v justification_n by_o special_a faith_n only_o and_o not_o by_o work_n and_o merit_n of_o grace_n as_o all_o know_v but_o these_o pretend_a professor_n namely_o the_o waldense_n &_o wickliffist_n hold_v rigorous_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n in_o so_o much_o as_o wickliff_n say_v let_v every_o man_n confide_v in_o his_o merit_n for_o which_o saying_n he_o be_v refute_v by_o the_o catholic_a author_n thomas_n waldensis_n tom._n 3._o c._n 7.8.9_o grecian_n no_o protestant_n in_o essence_n in_o particular_a the_o pedigree_n be_v notorious_o false_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o grecian_n who_o can_v without_o impudence_n be_v name_v as_o protestant_n according_a to_o essence_n and_o kind_n first_o they_o hold_v damnable_a heresye_n and_o substantial_a error_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o protestant_n so_o wit_n invocation_n of_o saint_n adoration_n of_o image_n as_o they_o profess_v in_o their_o censure_n
the_o first_o place_n for_o as_o protestant_n acknowledge_v the_o particular_a examination_n of_o doctrine_n be_v tedious_a and_o long_a not_o for_o the_o capacity_n of_o all_o whereas_o the_o find_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n end_v all_o controversye_n see_v we_o may_v secure_o follow_v her_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n field_n epist._n dedicat_fw-la second_o what_o more_o idle_a and_o vain_a then_o to_o appeal_v from_o scripture_n set_v down_o matter_n clear_o unto_o scripture_n teach_v thing_n obscure_o or_o not_o so_o clear_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o appeal_v from_o light_n to_o darkness_n or_o at_o the_o least_o from_o noon_n day_n to_o twilight_n but_o no_o particular_a point_n of_o doctrine_n be_v in_o holy_a scripture_n so_o manifest_o set_v down_o as_o be_v the_o church_n &_o the_o mark_n whereby_o the_o same_o may_v be_v know_v no_o matter_n about_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v more_o copious_a and_o clear_a then_o about_o visibility_n perpetuity_n amplitude_n the_o church_n be_v to_o have_v so_o that_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v scripture_n be_v more_o clear_a about_o the_o church_n then_o even_o about_o christ._n in_o psalm_n 30._o contion_n 2._o that_o scripture_n in_o this_o point_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o by_o no_o shift_n of_o false_a interpretation_n it_o can_v be_v avoid_v the_o impudence_n of_o any_o forehead_n that_o will_v stand_v against_o this_o evidence_n be_v confound_v de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccles._n c._n 5._o that_o it_o be_v prodigious_a blindness_n not_o to_o see_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n tract_n 1._o in_o 1._o epist._n joan._n that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o tabernacle_n place_v in_o the_o sun_n that_o it_o can_v be_v hide_v unto_o any_o but_o such_o as_o shut_v their_o eye_n against_o it_o l._n 2._o cont_n petilian_n c._n 32._o what_o vanity_n then_o be_v it_o for_o protestant_n not_o be_v able_a to_o clear_v by_o scripture_n the_o clear_a of_o all_o point_n to_o appeal_v unto_o the_o prove_v of_o their_o doctrine_n by_o more_o dark_a or_o less_o evident_a place_n three_o if_o no_o man_n can_v direct_o know_v which_o be_v the_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n deliver_v but_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n than_o it_o be_v vain_a before_o they_o decide_v this_o controversy_n to_o undertake_v to_o prove_v by_o scripture_n what_o doctrine_n the_o apostle_n teach_v for_o how_o can_v scripture_n make_v i_o know_v what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v unless_o i_o know_v aforehand_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n i_o may_v see_v this_o or_o that_o doctrine_n deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n show_v i_o as_o the_o apostle_n but_o i_o can_v know_v that_o doctrine_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n except_o i_o know_v aforehand_o the_o book_n to_o be_v the_o apostle_n but_o this_o can_v be_v prove_v but_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n i_o omit_v many_o other_o argument_n whereby_o this_o shift_n may_v be_v convince_v to_o be_v but_o fly_v from_o the_o light_n of_o god_n word_n about_o the_o visible_a church_n for_o as_o say_v saint_n augustine_n l._n 1._o contra_fw-la crescon_n cap._n 33._o god_n will_v have_v his_o church_n to_o be_v describe_v in_o scripture_n without_o any_o ambiguity_n as_o clear_a as_o the_o beam_n of_o the_o sun_n that_o the_o controversy_n about_o the_o true_a church_n be_v clear_o decide_v when_o question_n about_o particular_a doctrine_n that_o be_v obscure_a arise_v we_o may_v fly_v to_o she_o and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n &_o that_o this_o visibility_n be_v a_o manifest_a sign_n whereby_o even_o the_o rude_a and_o ignorant_a may_v discern_v the_o true_a church_n from_o the_o false_a augustine_n l._n 13._o cont_n faust._n c._n 13._o must_v either_o be_v the_o roman_a or_o the_o protestant_n or_o some_o other_o opposite_a unto_o both_o protestant_n can_v say_v a_o church_n opposite_a unto_o both_o for_o than_o they_o shall_v be_v condemn_v in_o their_o own_o judgement_n and_o bind_v to_o conform_v themselves_o to_o that_o church_n which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o grecian_a a_o church_n hold_v almost_o as_o many_o if_o not_o more_o doctrine_n which_o protestant_n dislike_v they_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o i_o can_v demonstrate_v if_o need_v be_v it_o be_v also_o most_o manifest_a &_o undeniable_a that_o protestant_n be_v not_o such_o nor_o part_n of_o such_o a_o church_n since_o their_o revolt_n and_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a see_v confess_o they_o change_v their_o doctrine_n they_o once_o hold_v forsake_v the_o body_n whereof_o they_o be_v member_n break_v off_o from_o the_o stock_n of_o that_o tree_n whereof_o they_o be_v branch_n neither_o do_v they_o depart_v from_o the_o roman_a &_o join_v themselves_o with_o any_o church_n profess_v their_o particular_a doctrine_n dissonant_n from_o it_o ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a &_o apostolical_a church_n the_o second_o argument_n this_o also_o plain_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o man_n of_o understanding_n that_o will_v cast_v on_o the_o roman_a church_n a_o unpartial_a eye_n for_o she_o be_v most_o evident_o apostolical_a have_v most_o glorious_a succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n famous_a in_o all_o point_n all_o the_o minister_n p._n 116._o lin_v 9_o say_v that_o it_o be_v inconsequent_a to_o infer_v negative_o from_o humane_a history_n &_o to_o say_v history_n be_v silent_a &_o therefore_o no_o such_o matter_n i_o answer_v hence_o one_o may_v feel_v even_o with_o his_o hand_n what_o a_o unconsequent_a and_o absurd_a religion_n they_o be_v which_o can_v stand_v without_o deny_v principle_n evident_a in_o common_a reason_n &_o receive_v by_o consent_n of_o mankind_n for_o who_o do_v not_o feel_v that_o to_o argue_v from_o humane_a history_n thus_o negative_o they_o be_v silent_a therefore_o there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o matter_n be_v many_o time_n convince_a and_o strong_a this_o some_o protestant_n more_o judicious_a than_o our_o minister_n acknowledge_v who_o thus_o write_v it_o be_v most_o plain_a that_o even_o negative_o a_o argument_n from_o humane_a authority_n may_v be_v strong_a as_o namely_o this_o the_o chronicle_n of_o england_n mention_v no_o more_o than_o only_o six_o king_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o edward_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o last_o conquest_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v there_o shall_v be_v more_o it_o be_v true_a man_n be_v ignorant_a many_o thing_n may_v escape_v they_o they_o may_v be_v deceive_v they_o may_v conceal_v truth_n or_o utter_a untruth_n out_o of_o malice_n they_o may_v forget_v what_o they_o know_v howbeit_o infinite_a case_n be_v wherein_o all_o these_o impediment_n be_v so_o manifest_o exclude_v as_o there_o be_v no_o show_n or_o colour_n whereby_o any_o such_o exception_n may_v be_v take_v thus_o m._n hooker_n eccles._n policy_n pag._n 115._o &_o 116._o now_o among_o these_o case_n wherein_o the_o negative_a argument_n from_o tradition_n and_o history_n be_v strong_a the_o chief_a be_v when_o the_o matter_n be_v famous_a and_o illustrious_a and_o there_o be_v a_o line_n and_o succession_n of_o chief_a bishop_n prince_n &_o person_n notorious_o know_v even_o to_o the_o particularitye_n of_o their_o name_n action_n day_n of_o their_o reign_n and_o death_n wherefore_o it_o be_v idle_a what_o the_o minister_n pag._n 230._o bring_v against_o this_o that_o we_o know_v not_o who_o be_v the_o first_o that_o eat_v man_n flesh_n nor_o when_o the_o assyrian_a matron_n do_v first_o prostitute_v themselves_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o venus_n for_o no_o wonder_n we_o know_v not_o such_o thing_n see_v we_o have_v not_o a_o lineal_a history_n of_o these_o time_n as_o we_o have_v of_o other_o time_n special_o since_o the_o come_n of_o christ._n for_o lineal_a history_n concern_v illustrious_a matter_n be_v both_o affirmative_o &_o negative_o strong_a yea_o more_o strong_a negative_o then_o affirmative_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o it_o be_v not_o so_o impossible_a that_o man_n with_o full_a report_n shall_v vent_v a_o untruth_n as_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v by_o full_a consent_n silent_a about_o a_o most_o illustrious_a truth_n man_n be_v in_o such_o case_n more_o prone_a to_o report_v then_o to_o conceal_v for_o example_n shall_v one_o contest_v that_o some_o of_o our_o king_n since_o the_o conquest_n set_v up_o image_n in_o all_o church_n of_o england_n the_o country_n be_v before_o that_o time_n pure_a protestant_n may_v not_o such_o a_o impudent_a writer_n be_v convince_v of_o madness_n by_o negative_a history_n and_o why_o but_o because_o there_o be_v a_o most_o notorious_a line_n of_o our_o king_n since_o the_o last_o conquest_n and_o their_o name_n action_n day_n of_o their_o reign_n and_o death_n most_o famous_o know_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n there_o be_v a_o line_n of_o pope_n so_o conspicuous_o know_v as_o nothing_o more_o from_z peter_z unto_o vrban_n they_o eight_o what_o
firm_o any_o minister_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n affirm_v a_o book_n to_o be_v scripture_n until_o we_o see_v clear_o that_o he_o deliver_v therein_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o then_o be_v evident_a unto_o we_o when_o we_o see_v he_o preach_v it_o free_o and_o open_o and_o no_o pastor_n to_o contradict_v he_o therein_o &_o may_v deceyve_v and_o if_o it_o may_v deceive_v how_o can_v they_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v see_v they_o themselves_o live_v not_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n nor_o see_v with_o their_o own_o eye_n what_o copy_n the_o apostle_n deliver_v but_o protestant_n as_o they_o pretend_v be_v certain_a that_o they_o have_v the_o true_a incorrupt_a apostolical_a text_n of_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la they_o have_v it_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n now_o the_o minor_a that_o they_o have_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o roman_a be_v apparent_a for_o what_o other_o church_n do_v deliver_v unto_o luther_n the_o text_n of_o the_o bible_n assure_v he_o that_o they_o have_v it_o by_o tradition_n from_o ancestor_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n as_o give_v original_o by_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v according_o acknowledge_v by_o 369._o by_o whitaker_n l._n 3._o de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la p._n 369._o m._n whitaker_n &_o persuasion_n &_o m._n dove_n in_o his_o persuasion_n other_o but_o particular_o by_o word_n by_o luther_n contra_fw-la anabap._n ton_fw-fr 7._o german_n jen._n fol._n 169._o §._o 2._o a_o papistis_fw-la sumpsimus_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la sacram_fw-la scripturam_fw-la etc._n etc._n alioquin_fw-la quid_fw-la de_fw-la istis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la nos_fw-la sciremus_fw-la thus_o luther_n show_v that_o protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n not_o only_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o also_o upon_o her_o authority_n &_o word_n luther_n himself_o ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n who_o tradition_n do_v deliver_v infallible_o unto_o we_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o if_o the_o true_a apostolical_a text_n then_o also_o word_n also_o luther_n contra_fw-la anabap._n ton_fw-fr 7._o german_n jen._n fol._n 169._o §._o 2._o a_o papistis_fw-la sumpsimus_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la sacram_fw-la scripturam_fw-la etc._n etc._n alioquin_fw-la quid_fw-la de_fw-la istis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la nos_fw-la sciremus_fw-la thus_o luther_n show_v that_o protestant_n receive_v the_o scripture_n not_o only_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o also_o upon_o her_o authority_n &_o word_n the_o true_a apostolicell_n sense_n this_o i_o prove_v if_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o deliver_v the_o bare_a text_n but_o together_o with_o the_o text_n the_o true_a text_n true_a we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v deliver_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o all_o their_o scripture_n make_v a_o large_a and_o entire_a commentary_n of_o all_o difficil_n text_n as_o the_o minister_n cavil_v pa._n 121._o but_o only_a that_o together_o with_o the_o text_n they_o deliver_v the_o sense_n about_o the_o main_n and_o most_o principal_a point_n &_o this_o sense_n thus_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n with_o the_o text_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v as_o religious_o and_o reverent_o as_o the_o text_n sense_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v deliver_v perpetual_o unto_o posterity_n than_o they_o who_o by_o tradition_n rereive_v from_o the_o apostle_n the_o true_a text_n must_v together_o receive_v the_o true_a sense_n but_o as_o 379._o as_o chemnit_fw-la in_o exam_n council_n trid._n part_n 1._o fol._n 74._o d._n bancroft_n in_o the_o survey_n pag._n 379._o principal_a protestant_n affirm_v no_o man_n doubt_v but_o the_o primitive_a church_n receyve_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n not_o only_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o also_o the_o right_n and_o native_a sense_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o 2._o of_o vincentius_n lyrinen_n cap_n 2._o the_o father_n that_o from_o the_o apostle_n together_o with_o the_o text_n descend_v the_o line_n of_o apostolical_a interpretation_n square_v according_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o catholic_a sense_n whereupon_o s_n 14._o s_n aug._n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la creden_n c._n 14._o augustine_n argue_v that_o they_o that_o deliver_v the_o text_n of_o christ_n gospel_n must_v also_o deliver_v the_o exposition_n affirm_v that_o he_o will_v soon_o refuse_v to_o believe_v christ_n then_o admit_v any_o interpretation_n contrary_a to_o they_o by_o who_o he_o be_v bring_v to_o believe_v in_o christ._n for_o they_o that_o can_v deliver_v by_o uniform_a tradition_n a_o false_a sense_n why_o may_v they_o not_o also_o deliver_v a_o false_a text_n as_o receyve_v from_o the_o apostle_n a_o argument_n convince_a and_o point_n and_o though_o the_o minister_n pag._n 123._o storm_n at_o this_o confidence_n of_o his_o adversary_n in_o term_v it_o unanswerable_a yet_o by_o deed_n he_o confirm_v the_o saying_n to_o be_v true_a in_o not_o answer_v but_o change_v the_o force_n thereof_o quite_o another_o way_n say_v it_o be_v this_o the_o text_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v as_o easy_o corrupt_v as_o the_o sense_n ergo_fw-la all_o they_o which_o can_v deliver_v by_o uniform_a tradition_n a_o false_a sense_n may_v also_o deliver_v a_o false_a text_n in_o this_o argument_n he_o deny_v the_o antecedent_n or_o assumption_n i_o answer_v first_o as_o i_o say_v the_o argument_n be_v pervert_v and_o the_o medium_n or_o mean_n of_o proof_n change_v for_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n betwixt_o be_v as_o easy_a &_o be_v as_o possible_a see_v a_o thing_n may_v be_v as_o possible_a as_o another_o and_o yet_o not_o so_o easy_a that_o ten_o man_n shall_v conspire_v to_o deceive_v i_o be_v not_o so_o easy_a as_o that_o three_o shall_v so_o conspire_v as_o be_v evident_a yet_o it_o be_v as_o possible_a as_o the_o other_o because_o no_o reason_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o prove_v that_o three_o may_v so_o conspire_v that_o prove_v not_o that_o also_o ten_o may_v do_v the_o like_a in_o the_o same_o manner_n though_o we_o shall_v grant_v the_o sense_n may_v be_v more_o easy_o mistake_v by_o the_o church_n than_o the_o text_n yet_o it_o be_v as_o possible_a that_o the_o church_n be_v mistake_v in_o the_o sense_n because_o no_o reason_n prove_v that_o uniform_a tradition_n can_v be_v mistake_v in_o the_o sense_n that_o prove_v not_o that_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v mistake_v in_o the_o text_n though_o perchance_o not_o so_o easy_o now_o if_o the_o church_n in_o her_o uniform_a tradition_n may_v be_v mistake_v about_o the_o text_n then_o be_v not_o tradition_n a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o infallible_a persuasion_n that_o the_o text_n be_v the_o apostle_n and_o so_o faith_n be_v overthrow_v which_o have_v no_o other_o ground_n to_o know_v assure_o the_o incorrupt_a scripture_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o tradition_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v second_o it_o be_v false_a that_o the_o sense_n and_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n concern_v main_n and_o substantial_a article_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v soon_o corrupt_v and_o a_o false_a sense_n persuade_v to_o the_o church_n than_o a_o false_a text_n the_o reason_n be_v manifest_a because_o million_o of_o christian_n know_v by_o tradition_n the_o doctrine_n of_o scripture_n about_o main_n point_n that_o know_v not_o all_o the_o text_n by_o which_o the_o same_o be_v prove_v yea_o perchance_o true_o &_o certain_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o for_o example_n the_o doctrine_n that_o there_o be_v three_o divine_a person_n and_o one_o god_n be_v so_o engrave_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o even_o simple_a christian_n as_o you_o may_v soon_o pull_v out_o their_o heart_n then_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o christian_a faith_n whence_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v the_o trinity_n but_o he_o be_v present_o note_v by_o al._n on_o the_o other_o side_n this_o text_n 1._o joan._n 5.7_o whereby_o the_o trinity_n be_v prove_v there_o be_v three_o that_o give_v testimony_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o million_o do_v not_o know_v and_o so_o it_o be_v more_o easy_a to_o take_v from_o christian_n this_o text_n than_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o and_o the_o same_o reason_n be_v of_o any_o other_o text_n the_o text_n be_v still_o common_o far_a more_o unknown_a than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o creed_n &_o such_o substantial_a point_n unanswerable_a the_o four_o argument_n my_o four_o proof_n i_o gronnd_v upon_o a_o principle_n most_o certain_a and_o set_v down_o by_o 75._o by_o in_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o conference_n before_o his_o majesty_n p._n 75._o your_o gracious_a majesty_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v once_o the_o mother_n church_n and_o consequent_o the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a apostolical_a church_n all_o other_o church_n be_v her_o daughter_n and_o that_o she_o be_v not_o to_o be_v forsake_v further_a than_o it_o can_v
as_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o know_v may_v be_v grant_v only_o it_o do_v rash_o apply_v god_n extraordinary_a favour_n to_o person_n without_o sufficient_a warrant_n the_o second_o error_n be_v that_o though_o baptism_n be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n for_o infant_n yet_o in_o defect_n thereof_o there_o be_v also_o another_o ordinary_a mean_n for_o their_o salvation_n to_o wit_v the_o faith_n of_o their_o parent_n this_o error_n be_v gross_a because_o it_o presume_v without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v or_o unwritten_a to_o appoint_v a_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o salvation_n for_o infant_n this_o doctrine_n be_v teach_v by_o protestant_n but_o no_o catholic_a hold_v it_o caietan_n once_o hold_v it_o with_o submission_n unto_o the_o church_n which_o have_v raze_v it_o out_o of_o his_o book_n the_o three_o error_n be_v that_o the_o child_n of_o faithful_a parent_n be_v iustify_v by_o the_o promise_n make_v to_o their_o seed_n and_o be_v god_n adopt_v child_n before_o they_o be_v bear_v so_o that_o baptism_n do_v not_o true_o regenerate_v they_o &_o make_v they_o god_n child_n but_o be_v say_v to_o regenerate_a and_o adopt_v because_o it_o be_v a_o seal_n and_o sign_n of_o this_o grace_n of_o adoption_n which_o child_n have_v before_o baptism_n yea_o bring_v with_o they_o into_o the_o world_n this_o error_n be_v fundamental_a and_o damnable_a which_o protestant_n hold_v and_o will_v hold_v in_o despite_n of_o their_o church_n and_o yet_o dare_v she_o not_o say_v they_o be_v not_o her_o child_n caluin_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la eccles._n reform_v inter_fw-la eius_fw-la opuscula_fw-la fol._n 759._o write_v the_o issue_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v bear_v into_o the_o world_n holy_a and_o sanctify_v because_o their_o child_n be_v yet_o in_o the_o womb_n before_o they_o draw_v breath_n be_v adopt_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o eternal_a life_n for_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o grace_n of_o adoption_n go_v before_o baptism_n which_o grace_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o halfe-saluation_n but_o bring_v perfect_a and_o full_a salvation_n which_o be_v afterward_o sign_v by_o baptism_n thus_o caluin_n what_o the_o minister_n bring_v out_o of_o the_o say_v caluin_n to_o prove_v he_o hold_v that_o baptism_n do_v true_o sanctify_v to_o wit_n that_o child_n be_v regenerate_v by_o baptism_n be_v idle_a for_o unto_o it_o caluin_n himself_o have_v make_v answer_n l._n 4._o institut_fw-la c._n 15._o §._o 2._o when_o say_v he_o baptism_n be_v say_v to_o regenerate_a to_o renew_v to_o sanctify_v to_o save_v man_n the_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o our_o purgation_n &_o salvation_n be_v make_v by_o water_n or_o that_o water_n have_v virtue_n to_o purify_v to_o regenerate_v to_o renew_v but_o only_o because_o by_o that_o sign_n we_o conceyve_v knowledge_n and_o certitude_n of_o such_o gift_n for_o what_o be_v give_v by_o the_o message_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v sign_v and_o seal_v by_o baptism_n here_o also_o i_o conclude_v that_o either_o the_o minister_n and_o his_o church_n err_v fundamental_o or_o at_o least_o they_o must_v grant_v four_o thing_n first_o that_o caluin_n and_o his_o part_n err_v fundamental_o second_o that_o culuinist_n can_v be_v save_v except_o they_o repent_v themselves_o of_o their_o religion_n three_o that_o among_o protestant_n there_o be_v dissension_n about_o fundamental_a matter_n four_o that_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o exclude_v from_o their_o communion_n such_o as_o hold_v substantial_a heresy_n necessity_n thereof_o for_o infant_n to_o who_o they_o grant_v salvation_n without_o baptism_n seaventh_o their_o error_n against_o the_o point_v the_o the_o minister_n say_v that_o protestant_n only_o deny_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n to_o wit_n transubstantiation_n not_o the_o substance_n thereof_o because_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o real_o and_o effectual_o present_a to_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n but_o present_a by_o the_o apprehension_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o by_o operative_a faith_n pag._n 178.179_o &_o seq_n &_o pag._n 390._o &_o 395._o i_o answer_v that_o as_o the_o answerer_n say_v this_o presence_n by_o faith_n be_v not_o real_a nor_o true_a but_o only_o pious_a imagination_n at_o the_o most_o as_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o sixth_o point_v real_a presence_n which_o they_o deny_v or_o else_o the_o main_n article_n of_o the_o creed_n that_o christ_n be_v still_o in_o heaven_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n for_o they_o will_v not_o allow_v a_o body_n in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o eight_o their_o deny_v the_o sacrament_n of_o fundamental_o of_o the_o minister_n pag._n 189._o say_v that_o protestant_n allow_v auricular_a confession_n and_o priestly_a absolution_n but_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n or_o of_o necessity_n in_o proof_n whereof_o he_o cit_v the_o augustane_n confession_n answer_n if_o the_o minister_n approve_v the_o augustan_n confession_n he_o must_v approve_v priestly_a absolution_n to_o be_v true_o a_o sacrament_n and_o of_o necessity_n be_v command_v of_o god_n even_o as_o baptism_n be_v for_o thus_o they_o write_v cap._n de_fw-fr numero_fw-la &_o usu_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la the_o true_a sacrament_n be_v baptism_n the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n absolution_n which_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n for_o these_o rite_n have_v the_o same_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o promise_v of_o grace_n proper_a to_o the_o new_a testament_n thus_o they_o so_o even_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o confession_n which_o they_o esteem_v as_o contain_v the_o fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o their_o religion_n our_o minister_n and_o his_o church_n err_v fundamental_o penance_n and_o priestly_a absolution_n the_o necessary_a mean_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n commit_v after_o give_v after_o against_o this_o sacrament_n the_o minister_n dispute_v large_o but_o his_o argument_n be_v trivial_a which_o he_o take_v out_o of_o bellarmine_n conceal_v the_o solution_n which_o who_o will_n may_v there_o read_v in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n what_o he_o bring_v out_o of_o some_o catholic_a author_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o prove_v clear_o this_o sacrament_n the_o answer_n be_v that_o to_o prove_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n and_o the_o necessity_n thereof_o for_o sin_n after_o baptism_n by_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o hard_o but_o easy_a which_o you_o may_v see_v full_o perform_v by_o bellarmine_n but_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o some_o text_n of_o scripture_n so_o clear_o as_o some_o cavil_n may_v not_o be_v take_v at_o the_o argument_n this_o be_v difficile_a and_o no_o wonder_n see_v our_o minister_n pag._n 541._o lin_v 9_o do_v grant_v that_o even_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o religion_n can_v be_v so_o prove_v by_o scripture_n but_o seem_a solution_n may_v be_v give_v baptism_n nine_o their_o deny_v the_o catholic_a church_n express_o set_v down_o in_o the_o creed_n which_o of_o all_o other_o article_n be_v with_o heretic_n with_o other_o article_n be_v more_o necessary_a they_o this_o as_o sole_a object_n of_o necessary_a divine_a affection_n &_o in_o this_o respect_n be_v more_o dangerous_o deny_v but_o as_o the_o mean_n of_o know_v necessary_a object_n nothing_o more_o necessary_a than_o this_o true_a church_n nor_o any_o thing_n more_o evident_a &_o therefore_o the_o denial_n thereof_o be_v most_o dangerous_a in_o respect_n of_o heresy_n yea_o the_o article_n without_o resistance_n whereof_o no_o man_n can_v be_v heretic_n great_a danger_n deny_v for_o the_o stand_n out_o against_o this_o make_v man_n heretic_n &_o without_o err_v against_o this_o no_o man_n be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n whatsoever_o doctor_n field_n to_o the_o contrary_n say_v that_o a_o errant_a against_o a_o fundamental_a point_n be_v a_o heretic_n though_o he_o err_v without_o we_o without_o what_o the_o minister_n say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v pertinacious_a &_o obstinate_a against_o scripture_n &_o not_o against_o the_o church_n be_v impossible_a for_o either_o he_o see_v his_o doctrine_n to_o be_v against_o scripture_n or_o not_o if_o he_o see_v his_o doctrine_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n &_o yet_o hold_v it_o he_o do_v judge_n the_o scripture_n not_o to_o be_v christ_n nor_o of_o god_n &_o consequent_o he_o be_v pertinacious_a against_o the_o church_n tradition_n which_o as_o have_v be_v say_v be_v the_o stay_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o this_o point_n if_o he_o see_v not_o his_o exposition_n to_o be_v against_o scripture_n but_o be_v deceyve_v by_o conference_n of_o place_n he_o be_v not_o heretic_n until_o know_v his_o exposition_n to_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o church_n he_o persist_v therein_o for_o what_o be_v pertinacious_a wilfulness_n but_o to_o resist_v lawful_a authority_n which_o we_o know_v to_o be_v against_o we_o pertinacity_n whereof_o he_o bring_v not_o any_o syllable_n of_o proof_n &_o
yet_o his_o doctrine_n be_v against_o the_o whole_a consent_n of_o divines_n &_o express_o against_o s._n augustine_n who_o say_v that_o a_o man_n hold_v with_o photinus_n who_o error_n be_v fundamental_a against_o the_o trinity_n &_o god_n head_n of_o christ_n think_v he_o hold_v catholic_a doctrine_n be_v not_o yet_o a_o wilful_a a_o the_o minister_n say_v pa._n 196._o that_o the_o jesvite_n cite_v not_o augustine_n true_o for_o he_o only_o say_v i_o will_v not_o affirm_v of_o such_o a_o person_n that_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n answer_n this_o be_v untruth_n s._n austin_n say_v istum_fw-la nondum_fw-la haereticum_fw-la dico_fw-la i_o do_v affirm_v this_o man_n not_o to_o be_v yet_o a_o heretic_n though_o he_o hold_v fundamental_a error_n till_o he_o know_v he_o do_v it_o against_o the_o catholic_a church_n what_o he_o add_v that_o s._n austin_n mean_v that_o ignorance_n be_v not_o heresy_n in_o foro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la but_o be_v heresy_n in_o foro_fw-la caeli_fw-la be_v ridiculous_a for_o the_o contrary_n be_v true_a because_o whosoever_o deny_v though_o ignorant_o the_o know_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v a_o heretic_n in_o foro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la because_o he_o be_v presume_v to_o err_v out_o of_o contempt_n not_o out_o of_o ignorance_n but_o if_o he_o be_v true_o ignorant_a he_o be_v no_o heretic_n in_o foro_fw-la caeli_fw-la because_o very_o he_o be_v not_o wilful_a heretic_n till_o warn_v that_o he_o hold_v against_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o choose_v to_o persevere_v in_o his_o error_n hence_o i_o infer_v that_o protestant_n err_v fundamental_o according_a to_o the_o second_o kind_n of_o err_a to_o wit_n in_o the_o manner_n in_o all_o point_v they_o hold_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o i_o haved_z prove_v to_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n for_o he_o that_o hold_v any_o private_a opinion_n so_o stiff_o as_o rather_o they_o forsake_v it_o he_o deny_v &_o abandon_v the_o catholic_a church_n a_o main_n article_n of_o his_o creed_n err_v fundamental_o as_o be_v clear_a but_o protestant_n hold_v their_o private_a opinion_n so_o stiff_o as_o thereupon_o they_o have_v deny_v and_o abandon_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o wit_n the_o roman_a neither_o do_v it_o import_v that_o they_o retain_v the_o word_n have_v reject_v the_o sense_n see_v not_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o creed_n pronounce_v but_o the_o matter_n believe_v make_v man_n christian_n neither_o be_v it_o enough_o to_o say_v that_o they_o believe_v the_o church_n of_o the_o elect_n see_v the_o church_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o the_o only_a elect_n a_o mere_a fancy_n but_o the_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a church_n continue_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n which_o thus_o i_o prove_v the_o church_n whereof_o christ_n say_v i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o creed_n or_o the_o church_n which_o to_o forsake_v be_v damnable_a for_o the_o church_n wherewith_o christ_n still_o abide_v not_o according_a to_o corporal_a &_o visible_a presence_n but_o by_o his_o spirit_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereof_o he_o be_v head_n into_o which_o he_o infuse_v the_o life_n of_o grace_n &_o consequent_o he_o that_o forsake_v this_o church_n forsake_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o head_n thereof_o and_o can_v live_v by_o his_o spirit_n but_o be_v in_o a_o dead_a and_o damnable_a state_n as_o a_o member_n cut_v off_o and_o separate_v from_o a_o live_a body_n as_o s._n augustine_n epist_n 50._o &_o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccles._n c._n 16._o long_v ago_o note_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n whereof_o he_o be_v head_n out_o of_o this_o body_n the_o holy_a ghost_n quicken_v not_o man_n now_o the_o church_n whereof_o christ_n say_v i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o the_o church_n invisible_a of_o only_a the_o elect_n but_o a_o visible_a church_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o he_o that_o forsake_v the_o church_n derive_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n forsake_v the_o church_n of_o the_o creed_n the_o catholic_a church_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o put_v himself_o into_o a_o dead_a &_o damnable_a state_n &_o may_v have_v all_o thing_n beside_o salvation_n and_o eternal_a life_n as_o father_n affirm_v who_o testimony_n in_o this_o behalf_n be_v notable_a and_o famous_o know_v whereunto_o d._n field_n yield_v acknowlege_v one_o holy_a catholic_a church_n in_o which_o only_o the_o light_n of_o heavenly_a truth_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v where_o only_a grace_n mercy_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o hope_v of_o eternal_a happiness_n be_v find_v a_o answer_n to_o the_o nine_o point_n propose_v by_o your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n i_o have_v be_v large_a in_o my_o former_a proof_n that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o one_o holy_a true_a catholic_a church_n who_o tradition_n come_v down_o by_o perpetual_a succession_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o holy_a apostle_n be_v so_o constant_o and_o strong_o to_o be_v believe_v that_o no_o proof_n out_o of_o scripture_n by_o private_a interpretation_n understand_v though_o seem_v most_o evident_a may_v stand_v to_o contest_v faith_n contest_v the_o minister_n here_o spend_v a_o whole_a leaf_n of_o paper_n in_o bitterness_n &_o gall_n against_o we_o as_o if_o we_o do_v profess_v to_o prefer_v old_a custom_n before_o know_a verity_n it_o be_v not_o so_o but_o thus_o the_o case_n stand_v between_o protestant_n and_o us._n first_o as_o for_o verity_n neither_o they_o nor_o we_o know_v our_o religion_n to_o be_v verity_n by_o manifest_a sight_n nor_o by_o the_o light_n lustre_n &_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n or_o doctrine_n as_o both_o of_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v if_o we_o be_v sober_a second_o there_o be_v record_n which_o by_o tradition_n we_o know_v to_o have_v be_v give_v by_o the_o apostle_n which_o upon_o good_a warrant_n be_v believe_v to_o deliver_v nothing_o but_o god_n holy_a word_n three_o when_o controversy_n arise_v about_o this_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o there_o be_v different_a opinion_n about_o the_o sense_n thereof_o &_o seem_a argument_n be_v bring_v on_o both_o side_n we_o think_v that_o side_n ought_v to_o prevail_v as_o the_o true_o christian_a for_o which_o perpetual_a christian_a tradition_n &_o custom_n stand_v fourtly_n we_o judge_v that_o that_o side_n ought_v to_o be_v reject_v as_o not_o true_o christian_a where_o christian_a tradition_n be_v so_o notorios_o defective_a as_o they_o can_v ascend_v from_o this_o age_n upward_o towards_o christ_n by_o name_v professor_n of_o their_o religion_n high_a than_o one_o hundred_o year_n or_o if_o they_o presume_v to_o pass_v further_o they_o be_v present_o convince_v to_o feign_v as_o it_o happen_v unto_o protestant_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v hitherto_o say_v and_o the_o form_n of_o the_o catholic_a proceed_v about_o their_o resolution_n of_o faith_n against_o they_o and_o this_o i_o have_v not_o do_v without_o purpose_n assure_v myself_o that_o if_o your_o majesty_n be_v thorough_o persuade_v in_o this_o point_n you_o will_v without_o any_o man_n help_n most_o easy_o and_o full_o satisfy_v yourself_o in_o particular_a controversye_n out_o of_o your_o own_o wisdom_n and_o learning_n for_o as_o some_o that_o have_v be_v present_a at_o your_o majesty_n discourse_n casual_o incident_a about_o religion_n report_n few_o of_o our_o divines_n though_o train_v up_o continual_o in_o academy_n and_o exercise_n of_o theology_n be_v able_a to_o say_v more_o them_z your_o majesty_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o catholic_a cause_n for_o particular_a controversye_n when_o you_o please_v to_o undertake_v the_o patronage_n thereof_o which_o i_o can_v easy_o believe_v out_o of_o my_o own_o experience_n who_o can_v not_o but_o admire_v see_v your_o majesty_n so_o well_o acquaint_v with_o our_o doctrine_n and_o so_o ready_a and_o prompt_a in_o scholastical_a subtlety_n wherefore_o most_o humble_o i_o beseech_v your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n to_o honour_v these_o my_o poor_a labour_n with_o a_o gracious_a perusal_n of_o they_o accept_v of_o my_o answer_n when_o they_o may_v seem_v reasonable_a be_v in_o defence_n of_o doctrine_n receive_v from_o ancestor_n which_o deserve_v approbation_n when_o there_o be_v no_o evidency_n against_o they_o and_o of_o your_o abundant_a clemency_n pardon_v my_o prolixity_n see_v the_o question_n by_o your_o majesty_n propose_v be_v so_o difficile_a and_o obscure_a as_o i_o can_v hardly_o have_v make_v any_o short_a full_a explication_n of_o they_o the_o first_o point_n the_o air_n the_o the_o minister_n in_o this_o question_n know_v not_o well_o what_o to_o stand_v unto_o he_o grant_n the_o question_n and_o then_o he_o deny_v it_o again_o contradict_v himself_o yea_o censure_a his_o own_o whole_a
old_a father_n meaning_n the_o father_n o●_n the_o old_a testament_n not_o of_o the_o new_a whi●●_n appear_v because_o in_o proof_n of_o his_o say_n 〈◊〉_d bring_v not_o the_o testimony_n of_o say_v of_o the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 250._o lin_v 11._o that_o polidore_n name_v gregory_n among_o the_o old_a father_n that_o condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n as_o hierome_n do_v witness_n answer_n this_o be_v false_a and_o impossible_a for_o gregory_n live_v all_o most_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o s._n hierome_n how_o can_v he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o old_a father_n who_o s._n hierome_n witness_v to_o have_v condemn_v image-worship_n for_o fear_n of_o idolatry_n gregory_n they_o be_v name_v by_o polidore_n not_o among_o the_o old_a father_n but_o as_o one_o of_o the_o new_a father_n that_o be_v father_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o seem_v to_o speak_v against_o image-worship_n but_o in_o truth_n do_v not_o as_o have_v be_v say_v any_o father_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o only_o of_o the_o old_a as_o of_o moses_n david_n hieremy_n and_o other_o prophet_n and_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o whole_a chapter_n be_v to_o declare_v that_o the_o reason_n why_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o father_n mislike_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n of_o god_n be_v because_o they_o can_v not_o paint_v he_o aright_o cùm_fw-la deum_fw-la nemo_fw-la vidisset_fw-la unquam_fw-la because_o than_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n adore_v god_n the_o minister_n say_v that_o the_o jew_n at_o least_o may_v have_v adore_v the_o image_n of_o prophet_n if_o such_o adoration_n have_v be_v lawful_a as_o the_o papist_n hold_v answer_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n i_o argue_v the_o jew_n may_v have_v make_v the_o image_n of_o their_o holy_a prophet_n if_o the_o make_n of_o they_o have_v be_v lawful_a as_o protestant_n hold_v let_v the_o minister_n prove_v by_o god_n word_n they_o make_v they_o &_o i_o will_v prove_v they_o worship_v they_o let_v he_o i_o say_v show_v that_o image_n of_o prophet_n be_v set_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o prophecy_n as_o he_o be_v set_v in_o the_o frontispiece_n of_o this_o his_o reply_n and_o i_o promise_v he_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o be_v honour_v this_o be_v the_o thing_n whereof_o we_o require_v example_n in_o scripture_n and_o wherein_o the_o minister_n be_v as_o dumb_a as_o a_o fish_n not_o able_a to_o show_v one_o proper_a image_n of_o a_o adore_a person_n lawful_o make_v that_o may_v not_o lawful_o be_v adore_v afterward_o god_n say_v polidore_n have_v take_v flesh_n and_o be_v become_v visible_a to_o mortal_a eye_n man_n flock_v to_o he_o and_o do_v without_o doubt_n behold_v and_o reverence_v his_o face_n shine_v with_o the_o brightness_n of_o divine_a light_n and_o even_o then_o they_o begin_v to_o paint_v or_o carve_v his_o image_n already_o imprint_v in_o their_o mind_n and_o these_o image_n they_o receive_v with_o great_a worship_n and_o veneration_n as_o be_v reason_n the_o honour_n of_o the_o image_n redound_v to_o the_o original_n as_o basill_n write_v which_o custom_n of_o adore_a image_n the_o father_n be_v so_o far_o from_o reprove_v as_o they_o do_v not_o only_o admit_v thereof_o but_o also_o decree_v and_o command_v the_o same_o by_o general_n counsel_n in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n the_o four_o and_o justinian_n the_o second_o his_o son_n and_o therefore_o what_o man_n be_v there_o so_o dissolute_a &_o audacious_a as_o can_v dream_v of_o the_o contrary_a and_o doubt_v of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o this_o worship_n establish_v so_o long_o ago_o by_o decree_n of_o most_o holy_a father_n thus_o write_v polidore_n and_o much_o more_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o the_o very_a place_n where_o the_o minister_n cit_v he_o to_o the_o contrary_a which_o show_v how_o notorious_o his_o credulous_a reader_n be_v abuse_v in_o matter_n of_o most_o moment_n hence_o appear_v the_o three_o falsehood_n that_o in_o gregorye_n day_n image_n begin_v to_o be_v set_v up_o in_o church_n which_o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n long_o before_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n basill_n paulinus_n lactantius_n and_o tertullian_n do_v sufficient_o witness_v neither_o can_v our_o adversary_n bring_v any_o clear_a testimony_n of_o antiquity_n against_o this_o custom_n for_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n truth_n council_n the_o minister_n say_v that_o some_o pontifician_n grant_v that_o this_o council_n forbid_v the_o make_n of_o image_n so_o clear_o be_v their_o decree_n against_o they_o i_o answer_v such_o author_n have_v no_o reason_n in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v so_o persuade_v of_o this_o council_n but_o only_o the_o word_n of_o the_o decree_n now_o the_o word_n of_o the_o decree_n be_v not_o clear_a yea_o they_o can_v admit_v that_o sense_n be_v compare_v with_o the_o word_n that_o immediate_o follow_v as_o the_o jesuit_n do_v demonstrate_v in_o so_o much_o as_o the_o minister_n to_o frame_v a_o argument_n out_o of_o this_o decree_n be_v force_v ridiculous_o to_o curtail_v the_o text_n &_o take_v some_o few_o word_n leave_v the_o rest_n such_o be_v his_o obstinacy_n against_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n of_o eliberis_n that_o no_o picture_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n lest_o that_o which_o be_v worship_v or_o adore_v be_v paint_v on_o wall_n which_o the_o minister_n weigh_v pag._n 345._o much_o urge_v clear_o signifi_v the_o contrary_a for_o may_v not_o image_n paint_v on_o table_n be_v in_o church_n and_o yet_o neither_o make_v in_o the_o church_n nor_o paint_v on_o wall_n which_o kind_n of_o image_n the_o council_n do_v not_o forbid_v and_o why_o do_v the_o council_n forbid_v image_n to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n as_o pertinent_a to_o the_o fabric_n thereof_o or_o to_o be_v paint_v on_o wall_n but_o out_o of_o reverence_n unto_o image_n for_o they_o be_v holy_a thing_n and_o so_o to_o be_v honour_v for_o their_o prototype_n sake_n the_o council_n think_v it_o unworthy_a of_o their_o dignity_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v on_o wall_n where_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v deface_v and_o deform_v and_o by_o persecutor_n for_o that_o council_n be_v hold_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n abuse_v he_o do_v also_o way_n pag._n 345._o much_o insist_v upon_o epiphanius_n epist_n ad_fw-la joan._n hicrosol_n but_o relate_v according_a to_o his_o fashion_n both_o his_o fact_n &_o word_n unsincere_o epiphanius_n say_v he_o find_v a_o image_n paint_v on_o a_o cloth_n hang_v in_o a_o church_n rend_v it_o down_o and_o say_v it_o be_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o any_o image_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n thus_o he_o unsincere_o as_o i_o say_v not_o expressinge_v what_o kind_n of_o image_n that_o be_v that_o epiphanius_n rend_v in_o piece_n for_o epiphanius_n say_v cùm_fw-la invenissem_fw-la imaginem_fw-la hominis_fw-la pendentem_fw-la in_o e●cl_n sit_fw-la tanquam_fw-la christi_fw-la aut_fw-la alicuius_fw-la sancti_fw-la n●scio_fw-la enim_fw-la cvius_fw-la erat_fw-la when_o i_o have_v find_v a_o image_n of_o a_o man_n hang_v in_o the_o church_n as_o christ_n or_o some_o saint_n for_o i_o know_v not_o of_o who_o the_o image_n be_v epiphanius_n mutaret_fw-la epiphanius_n here_o the_o minister_n rayl_v most_o intolerable_o cry_v that_o the_o testimony_n be_v clear_a but_o not_o so_o much_o as_o endeavour_n to_o answer_v the_o jesuit_n argument_n that_o be_v demonstrative_a as_o much_o as_o any_o can_v be_v in_o this_o kind_n of_o matter_n the_o minister_n argument_n on_o the_o other_o side_n have_v no_o force_n at_o all_o be_v two_o propose_v in_o a_o double_a interrogation_n if_o say_v he_o pag._n 254._o lin_v 2._o epiphanius_n himself_o do_v not_o remember_v who_o image_n it_o be_v whether_o of_o christ_n or_o of_o a_o saint_n or_o of_o some_o profane_a man_n how_o know_v this_o jesuite_n that_o it_o be_v the_o image_n of_o a_o profane_a person_n i_o answer_v that_o epiphanius_n do_v know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o christ_n image_n nor_o any_o saint_n but_o some_o profane_v person_n though_o he_o know_v not_o determinate_o what_o profane_a person_n the_o same_o be_v for_o epiphanius_n will_v not_o have_v urge_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o hang_v that_o image_n in_o the_o church_n in_o regard_n it_o be_v a_o man_n image_n have_v he_o not_o understand_v a_o profane_a man_n hence_o his_o second_o interrogation_n be_v answer_v why_o be_v epiphanius_n silent_a and_o do_v not_o say_v it_o be_v some_o profane_a man_n answer_n epiphanius_n be_v not_o silent_a that_o the_o image_n he_o tear_v in_o piece_n be_v the_o image_n of_o a_o profane_a man_n see_v he_o term_v it_o the_o image_n of_o a_o man_n hang_v in_o the_o church_n as_o christ_n or_o some_o saint_n and_o this_o the_o complayner_n know_v well_o enough_o for_o if_o this_o picture_n have_v be_v christ_n or_o some_o
flee_v for_o fear_n of_o punishment_n unto_o the_o protestant_n of_o france_n &_o there_o profess_v what_o he_o be_v polidore_n vives_z gerson_n be_v note_v as_o full_a of_o mistake_v in_o their_o complaint_n and_o rash_a in_o judginge_v and_o censure_v durandus_fw-la speak_v against_o indiscreet_a &_o excessive_a use_n of_o image_n that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v dangerous_a which_o no_o man_n deny_v gabriel_n biel_n deride_v the_o simplicity_n of_o some_o people_n that_o rather_o worship_v fair_a imag_n and_o such_o as_o be_v trim_v they_o other_o which_o simplicity_n be_v no_o more_o idolatry_n than_o it_o be_v to_o hear_v the_o sermon_n of_o a_o minister_n trim_v in_o his_o ruff●_n and_o cuff_n more_o willing_o then_o of_o another_o more_o simple_o attire_v to_o this_o purpose_n bringinge_v some_o testimony_n of_o s_o augustine_n epist_n 19_o and_o in_o psal._n 113._o to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o this_o may_v seem_v a_o great_a wrong_v not_o only_o to_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o also_o to_o christ_n himself_o to_o think_v that_o man_n endue_v with_o his_o knowledge_n &_o faith_n and_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o light_n whereby_o they_o believe_v most_o high_a divine_a and_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n which_o he_o reveal_v to_o the_o world_n shall_v so_o easy_o be_v carry_v away_o into_o such_o blockish_a error_n as_o to_o think_v a_o stock_n or_o a_o stone_n to_o be_v god_n a_o blindness_n scarce_o incident_a unto_o man_n except_o they_o be_v whole_o destitute_a of_o all_o heavenly_a conceit_n and_o nuzzelled_a up_o from_o their_o cradle_n in_o that_o persuasion_n as_o paynim_n be_v of_o who_o only_a s._n augustine_n speak_v for_o they_o do_v not_o only_o want_v this_o light_n of_o christian_a instruction_n but_o also_o be_v teach_v by_o their_o ancestor_n that_o in_o their_o idol_n a_o kind_n of_o divine_a virtue_n or_o godhead_n be_v lodge_v and_o affix_v unto_o they_o whereas_o catholic_a doctrine_n teach_v the_o contrary_a that_o our_o image_n be_v bare_a resemblance_n of_o holy_a person_n no_o divinity_n no_o virtue_n no_o dignity_n no_o sanctity_n that_o make_v they_o venerable_a be_v in_o they_o but_o in_o the_o prototype_n second_o such_o idol_n as_o the_o paynim_n adore_v many_o of_o they_o do_v by_o devil_n mean_n ordinary_o speak_v give_v answer_n move_v and_o exercise_v other_o action_n of_o life_n so_o that_o their_o speak_n be_v not_o account_v miraculous_a and_o extraordinary_a but_o rather_o their_o silence_n which_o speaking_n be_v very_o potente_a to_o persuade_v man_n to_o believe_v what_o their_o ancestor_n tell_v they_o that_o those_o very_a stock_n and_o stone_n be_v god_n or_o have_v a_o godhead_n affix_v unto_o they_o now_o these_o kind_n of_o thing_n seldom_o happen_v in_o our_o image_n scarce_o once_o in_o a_o age_n and_o when_o they_o happen_v they_o be_v take_v as_o miracle_n wrought_v not_o by_o the_o image_n or_o any_o virtue_n reside_v in_o they_o but_o by_o god_n infinite_a power_n nor_o be_v they_o bring_v to_o prove_v any_o excellency_n affix_v unto_o the_o image_n but_o only_o that_o god_n like_v that_o we_o shall_v honour_v our_o saviour_n and_o his_o saint_n in_o their_o image_n final_o i_o dare_v say_v vulgar_a &_o ordinary_a protestant_n in_o england_n by_o read_v reason_n read_v the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 272._o that_o the_o creed_n be_v as_o dangerous_a in_o this_o respect_n as_o the_o scripture_n because_o it_o name_v the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n answer_n the_o creed_n can_v import_v danger_n neither_o unto_o catholic_n nor_o unto_o protestant_n not_o unto_o catholic_n because_o with_o the_o text_n of_o the_o creed_n they_o receive_v the_o church_n explication_n thereof_o which_o still_o prevent_v mistake_v of_o that_o word_n not_o unto_o protestant_n because_o they_o must_v believe_v the_o creed_n no_o further_o than_o they_o see_v the_o same_o conform_a unto_o scripture_n and_o so_o the_o scripture_n attribute_v humane_a shape_n unto_o god_n be_v only_o dangerous_a unto_o they_o for_o the_o scripture_n perpetual_o attribute_n humane_a shape_n unto_o god_n and_o their_o common_a people_n read_v it_o by_o themselves_o without_o any_o guide_n who_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v further_o then_o by_o their_o skill_n in_o scripture_n they_o shall_v find_v reason_n the_o bible_n in_o their_o mother_n tongue_n be_v in_o great_a danger_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v a_o body_n and_o have_v all_o the_o part_n thereof_o even_o as_o have_v a_o man_n than_o any_o the_o simple_a catholic_a be_v to_o think_v a_o image_n to_o be_v god_n this_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v likely_a because_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o conceive_v god_n otherwise_o then_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o corporal_a thing_n and_o as_o the_o orator_n say_v we_o easy_o flatter_v ourselves_o to_o think_v our_o shape_n the_o fair_a and_o so_o the_o fit_a for_o god_n wherefore_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o man_n to_o assent_v to_o this_o error_n unto_o which_o the_o best_a and_o great_a wit_n that_o ever_o be_v tertullian_n apud_fw-la august_n heres_fw-la 86._o and_o s._n augustine_n himself_o while_o he_o be_v a_o manichee_n do_v assent_v l._n 3._o confess_v c._n 7._o much_o more_o easy_o therefore_o may_v ignorant_a us._n ignorant_a the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 272._o lin_v ult._n that_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o vulgar_a be_v lawful_a and_o holy_a but_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n be_v always_o condemn_v and_o censure_v by_o holy_a writ_n answer_n this_o be_v easy_o say_v but_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v for_o protestant_n can_v bring_v one_o text_n of_o scripture_n that_o approve_v scripture_n to_o be_v read_v by_o the_o vulgar_a as_o protestant_n pretend_v to_o wit_n with_o authority_n to_o censure_n out_o of_o their_o skill_n in_o scripture_n the_o most_o catholic_n &_o best_a church_n in_o the_o world_n nor_o will_v he_o or_o any_o of_o his_o progeny_n be_v able_a to_o bring_v one_o example_n or_o one_o text_n that_o show_v that_o image_n of_o adore_a person_n lawful_o make_v may_v not_o lawful_o be_v adore_v which_o be_v the_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o and_o us._n people_n be_v deceive_v therein_o through_o weakness_n of_o conceit_n and_o inclination_n of_o nature_n when_o they_o read_v the_o scripture_n describinge_v god_n as_o have_v the_o form_n and_o shape_n of_o man_n with_o head_n face_n eye_n ear_n hand_n and_o foot_n on_o the_o contrary_a side_n never_o any_o christian_a do_v teach_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o christ_n or_o a_o live_a thing_n nor_o ever_o do_v any_o man_n or_o woman_n except_o some_o few_o and_o those_o very_a simple_a and_o senseless_a if_o such_o history_n be_v true_a fall_v into_o such_o foolish_a imagination_n moreover_o child_n and_o ignorant_a people_n be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n often_o and_o plentiful_o instruct_v against_o such_o error_n as_o by_o our_o catechism_n appear_v and_o particular_o by_o jesuit_n who_o make_v a_o solemn_a vow_n to_o keep_v their_o institute_n especial_o about_o teach_v the_o rudiment_n of_o faith_n unto_o common_a and_o ignorant_a people_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o in_o town_n where_o they_o dwell_v and_o village_n about_o on_o sunday_n &_o holy_a day_n beside_o their_o sermon_n for_o people_n more_o intelligent_a they_o teach_v without_o fail_v unto_o child_n and_o man_n of_o rude_a sort_n the_o form_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o use_v all_o industry_n by_o give_v reward_n unto_o child_n and_o by_o bestow_v alm_n on_o poor_a people_n to_o make_v they_o willing_a &_o diligent_a in_o this_o learning_n in_o the_o english_a church_n what_o be_v do_v for_o the_o instruction_n of_o ignorant_a in_o their_o rudiment_n of_o faith_n by_o minister_n and_o pastor_n as_o i_o know_v not_o much_o so_o will_v i_o say_v nothing_o but_o only_o that_o time_n they_o spend_v in_o the_o praise_n of_o sole_a faith_n 334._o faith_n the_o minister_n here_o say_v that_o the_o jesuit_n do_v depress_v the_o english_a church_n accuse_v their_o pastor_n of_o negligence_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o term_v he_o one_o cui_fw-la verbosa_fw-la lingua_fw-la cor_fw-la verò_fw-la obtenebratum_fw-la speak_v much_o in_o praise_n of_o his_o church_n and_o of_o the_o lively_a sole_a faith_n they_o preach_v all_o which_o be_v idle_a and_o ridiculous_a and_o as_o for_o their_o sole_a faith_n if_o it_o be_v the_o same_o luther_n preach_v it_o be_v so_o lively_a and_o live-like_a as_o it_o make_v a_o man_n to_o live_v and_o not_o to_o die_v though_o he_o commit_v the_o dead_a work_n that_o may_v be_v whoredom_n and_o murder_v a_o thousand_o time_n adays_o luther_n tom._n 1._o epist._n latin_n fol._n 334._o and_o about_o the_o secret_n of_o predestination_n &_o in_o long_a bitter_a inuective_n against_o our_o doctrine_n misunderstand_v if_o not_o purposely_o misrelated_a may_v in_o my_o opinion_n more_o profitable_o be_v spend_v in_o declare_v
of_o their_o lord_n and_o saviour_n the_o three_o be_v to_o move_v and_o incite_v man_n to_o the_o imitation_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n which_o utility_n s._n basill_n martyr_n basill_n basil._n homil_n in_o 40._o martyr_n do_v declare_v &_o high_o esteem_v in_o his_o sermon_n of_o the_o forty_o martyr_n and_o example_n may_v be_v bring_v of_o man_n reclaim_v by_o sight_n of_o godly_a image_n even_o in_o the_o heat_n of_o sinful_a affection_n the_o four_o be_v to_o stay_v our_o thought_n upon_o christ_n and_o his_o passion_n that_o our_o imagination_n in_o prayer_n may_v not_o so_o easy_o wander_v which_o use_v of_o image_n catholic_n in_o their_o devotion_n do_v often_o experience_n final_o that_o in_o his_o image_n we_o may_v honour_v christ_n the_o honour_n of_o the_o image_n redound_v to_o the_o original_a and_o who_o so_o crow_v the_o king_n image_n honour_v the_o king_n who_o image_n it_o be_v say_v s._n 118._o s._n ambros._n serm_n in_o psal._n 118._o ambrose_n in_o which_o kind_a memorable_a be_v the_o devotion_n of_o our_o victorious_a and_o religious_a king_n anglor_n king_n polidor_n l._n 7._o histor._n anglor_n canutus_n who_o take_v the_o diadem_n that_o he_o use_v to_o wear_v on_o his_o own_o head_n and_o therewith_o crown_v a_o image_n of_o christ_n crucify_a which_o in_o his_o day_n be_v devout_o 2._o devout_o harpesfield_n eccles_n hist._n saeculo_fw-la 11._o cap._n 2._o reserve_v in_o the_o church_n of_o s._n peter_n &_o s._n paul_n in_o winchester_n &_o afterward_o will_v never_o have_v any_o crown_n come_v on_o his_o head_n out_o of_o humble_a reverence_n to_o his_o crucify_a lord_n weakness_n lord_n the_o minister_n conclude_v this_o disputation_n with_o say_v pag._n 289._o lin_v 10._o let_v it_o be_v note_v that_o our_o adversary_n have_v manifest_v wondrous_a weakness_n for_o he_o have_v not_o throughout_o his_o whole_a disputation_n produce_v one_o plain_a text_n of_o scripture_n or_o clear_a sentence_n of_o antiquity_n for_o iconolatry_n i_o answer_v that_o iconolatry_n signifyes_n divine_a worship_n of_o image_n which_o the_o answerer_n do_v not_o intend_v to_o establish_v yea_o the_o minister_n himself_o p._n 245._o lin_v 1._o say_v that_o iconolatry_n or_o divine_a worship_n of_o image_n be_v impertinent_a or_o heretogenious_a ●o_o this_o disputation_n wherefore_o the_o minister_n herein_o show_v wondrous_a defect_n of_o judgement_n who_o thus_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n fly_v the_o question_n nor_o have_v he_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v one_o example_n or_o text_n of_o scripture_n i_o do_v not_o say_v plain_a but_o with_o a_o little_a show_n to_o prove_v the_o question_n in_o hand_n that_o the_o proper_a image_n of_o adore_a person_n that_o be_v lawful_o make_v may_v not_o lawful_o be_v adore_v on_o the_o other_o side_n such_o image_n of_o adore_a person_n if_o they_o be_v make_v that_o they_o must_v be_v adore_v the_o honour_n do_v or_o deny_v to_o the_o image_n redound_v to_o the_o person_n the_o jesuite_n have_v prove_v by_o the_o force_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o image_n by_o the_o analogy_n unto_o image_n of_o humane_a adore_a person_n by_o the_o prophet_n david_n his_o practice_n of_o this_o principle_n by_o the_o prime_a article_n of_o christianity_n by_o testimony_n of_o father_n and_o by_o all_o kind_n of_o theological_a proof_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n more_o in_o particular_a concern_v the_o adoration_n of_o christ_n his_o image_n &_o material_a cross_n as_o be_v unto_o all_o learned_a man_n vulgar_o know_v and_o notorious_a the_o answerer_n do_v not_o produce_v further_o than_o be_v necessary_a to_o prove_v that_o protestant_n can_v true_o assign_v the_o time_n when_o the_o bow_n unto_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n be_v bring_v in_o among_o christian_n but_o by_o the_o apostle_n else_o what_o more_o easy_a then_o to_o have_v bring_v testimony_n for_o this_o point_n in_o every_o age_n upward_o from_o the_o eight_o where_o the_o same_o be_v define_v by_o the_o general_n council_n of_o nice_a as_o appear_v by_o this_o catalogue_n of_o four_o in_o every_o age_n which_o be_v one_o above_o the_o high_a number_n of_o witness_n require_v to_o make_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n firm_a &_o certain_a in_o the_o seven_o age_n the_o sixth_o general_n council_n canon_n 73._o say_v we_o that_o be_v save_v by_o the_o cross_n ought_v to_o use_v all_o diligence_n to_o give_v it_o due_a honour_n to_o wit_n adoration_n with_o mind_n with_o speech_n with_o gesture_n for_o which_o cause_n we_o decree_v that_o no_o image_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v make_v on_o the_o floor_n s._n maximus_n martyr_n lib._n cvi_fw-la titulus_fw-la ex_fw-la dogmat_fw-la inter_fw-la maximum_fw-la &_o theodos._n write_v that_o diverse_a person_n of_o worth_n &_o among_o they_o the_o bishop_n of_o caesarea_n be_v convert_v from_o the_o heresy_n of_o monothelisme_n do_v with_o tear_n of_o joy_n and_o penance_n go_v to_o the_o church_n where_o they_o salute_v that_o be_v bow_v unto_o the_o holy_a image_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o of_o our_o lady_n mother_n of_o god_n and_o lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o they_o abjure_v their_o heresye_n s._n sophronius_n homil._n in_o laudem_fw-la sanctae_fw-la crucis_fw-la in_o the_o midst_n of_o lent_n say_v he_o the_o venerable_a wood_n of_o the_o vital_a cross_n be_v adore_v see_v our_o lord_n have_v appoint_v this_o way_n for_o we_o to_o get_v pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o holy_a father_n s._n leontius_n lib._n 5._o adversus_fw-la judaeos_fw-la the_o jew_n deride_v we_o who_o have_v in_o honour_n and_o esteem_v and_o do_v worship_n the_o holy_a cross_n and_o sacred_a image_n term_v we_o worshipper_n of_o wooden_a idol_n in_o the_o sixth_o age_n s._n gregory_n l._n 7._o epist._n 5._o say_v worship_n and_o veneration_n be_v due_a to_o the_o holy_a cross_n &_o image_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n procopius_n gazensis_fw-la in_o cap._n 20._o isaia_n write_v that_o the_o christian_a custom_n be_v to_o paint_v the_o image_n of_o the_o holy_a martyr_n on_o the_o prore_n of_o ship_n for_o defence_n and_o protection_n euagrius_n l._n 4._o c._n 26._o relate_v miracle_n do_v through_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n s._n simeon_n stylites_n epist._n ad_fw-la justin._n imperat_fw-la say_v if_o according_a to_o your_o sacred_a law_n they_o that_o offer_v dishonour_n unto_o the_o statue_n and_o image_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v worthy_a of_o death_n what_o punishment_n do_v they_o deserve_v that_o with_o barbarous_a fury_n have_v deface_v the_o image_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o bless_a mother_n in_o the_o five_o age_n s._n cyril_n homil._n count_v nestor_n in_o council_n ephesin_n say_v the_o cross_n be_v adore_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n s._n sedulius_n lib._n 4._o paschal_n no_o man_n be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o image_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v s._n chrysostome_n in_o liturgia_fw-la let_v the_o priest_n as_o he_o go_v to_o the_o altar_n bow_v his_o head_n to_o the_o image_n of_o the_o crosse._n s._n hierome_n in_o epitaph_n paulae_fw-la commend_v the_o devotion_n of_o s._n paula_n in_o that_o she_o do_v lie_v prostrate_a before_o the_o cross_n &_o kiss_v the_o same_o with_o great_a faith_n adore_v christ_n therein_o as_o if_o she_o have_v see_v he_o present_a on_o the_o crosse._n s._n paulinus_n epist._n 11._o write_v that_o the_o print_n or_o image_n of_o our_o saviour_n foot_n on_o the_o mount_n olive●_n be_v miraculous_o conserve_v and_o adore_v as_o also_o the_o holy_a cross_n yearly_o at_o easter_n the_o bishop_n himself_o be_v the_o principal_a adorer_n in_o the_o four_o age_n prudentius_n l._n 2._o cont._n simmach_n the_o roman_a emperor_n lie_v prostrate_a in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o world_n adore_v the_o standard_n of_o the_o crosse._n s._n athanasius_n q._n 15._o ad_fw-la antiochum_fw-la write_v that_o christian_n worship_v the_o image_n of_o the_o cross_n if_o heathen_n accuse_v they_o of_o adore_v the_o wood_n may_v present_o dissolve_v the_o cross_n and_o cast_v away_o the_o wood_n helladius_n successor_n of_o s._n basill_n write_v of_o s._n basill_n how_o he_o do_v kneel_v and_o pray_v suppliant_o before_o the_o image_n of_o our_o b_o lady_n against_o the_o threat_n of_o julian_n the_o emperor_n julius_n firmicus_n de_fw-fr error_n profan_n religion_n c._n 22._o say_v what_o do_v these_o horn_n signify_v but_o the_o venerable_a figure_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n &_o c_o unto_o these_o horn_n fly_v with_o humble_a veneration_n in_o the_o three_o age_n before_o constantine_n lactantius_n live_v through_o he_o see_v also_o the_o beginning_n of_o constantine_n his_o reign_n this_o father_n in_o carm_n de_fw-fr pass_n testifyes_n that_o at_o the_o entrance_n of_o christian_a church_n be_v place_v a_o fair_a image_n of_o christ_n crucify_a &_o show_v how_o man_n ought_v &_o how_o
teach_v pray_v unto_o saint_n as_o a_o necessary_a supernatural_a duty_n of_o christian_a humility_n for_o though_o invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v not_o so_o simple_o necessary_a but_o a_o man_n may_v in_o some_o case_n be_v save_v without_o the_o exercise_n thereof_o yet_o because_o they_o that_o pray_v unto_o god_n feel_v by_o his_o holy_a inspiration_n their_o own_o unworthynes_n he_o move_v they_o to_o aid_v themselves_o by_o the_o comprecation_n of_o bless_a saint_n as_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o they_o what_o he_o say_v to_o the_o friend_n of_o job_n go_v to_o my_o belove_a servant_n that_o they_o may_v intercede_v for_o you_o hence_o man_n do_v not_o ordinary_o obtain_v what_o they_o desire_v of_o god_n without_o this_o humility_n of_o crave_v the_o intercession_n of_o saint_n to_o this_o purpose_n s._n greg._n nissen_n supplica_fw-la nissen_n orat._n in_o s._n theodor._n quod_fw-la si_fw-la maiore_fw-la opus_fw-la sit_fw-la auxilio_fw-la martyrum_fw-la adhibe_fw-la chorum_fw-la &_o unà_fw-la cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la supplica_fw-la say_v that_o sometime_o maiore_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la intercessione_n there_o be_v ●●ed_v of_o great_a intercession_n and_o to_o invocate_v or_o advocate_n the_o whole_a choir_n &_o company_n of_o saint_n to_o this_o purpose_n s._n augustine_n write_v that_o commendare_fw-la that_o august_n serm_n 17._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la apostoli_fw-la iniuria_fw-la est_fw-la pro_fw-la martyr_n orare_fw-la cvius_fw-la nos_fw-la debemus_fw-la orationibus_fw-la commendare_fw-la debemus_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o must_v recommend_v ourselves_o unto_o the_o prayer_n of_o martyr_n yea_o that_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o diligit_fw-la that_o idem_fw-la q._n 149._o in_o exodum_fw-la relevari_fw-la apud_fw-la deum_fw-la meritis_fw-la nos_fw-la posse_fw-la eorum_fw-la quos_fw-la diligit_fw-la when_o we_o feel_v that_o our_o bad_a merit_n weigh_v we_o down_o that_o we_o be_v not_o belove_v of_o god_n we_o may_v be_v relieve_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o they_o that_o be_v gracious_a in_o his_o sight_n this_o humility_n of_o fly_v to_o the_o merit_n of_o decease_a saint_n s._n chrysostome_n show_v to_o be_v teach_v we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o three_o child_n pray_v in_o the_o furnace_n confugiunt_fw-la furnace_n chrysost._n homil_n 84._o in_o matth._n quoniam_fw-la semetipsos_fw-la ad_fw-la impetrandam_fw-la populo_fw-la veniam_fw-la sufficere_fw-la non_fw-la credunt_fw-la ad_fw-la patrum_n merita_fw-la confugiunt_fw-la for_o say_v he_o because_o they_o do_v believe_v themselves_o not_o to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o obtain_v pardon_n for_o the_o people_n they_o fly_v to_o the_o merit_n of_o their_o father_n confess_v themselves_o to_o bring_v nothing_o with_o they_o worthy_a of_o regard_n beside_o a_o humble_a and_o contrite_a hart_n say_v for_o abraham_n thy_o belove_a for_o isaac_n thy_o servant_n &_o for_o israel_n thy_o holy_a one_o dan._n 3.35_o final_o s._n ambrose_n nostrorum_fw-la ambrose_n amb._n l_o de_fw-fr vid._n magno_fw-la peccato_fw-la obnoxia_fw-la minus_fw-la idonea_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la precetur_fw-la certè_fw-la quae_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la impetret_fw-la adhibeat_fw-la igitur_fw-la ad_fw-la medicum_fw-la alios_fw-la precatores_fw-la etc._n etc._n obsecrandi_fw-la sunt_fw-la angeli_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la qui_fw-la nobis_fw-la ad_fw-la praesidium_fw-la datisunt_fw-la martyr_n obsecrandi_fw-la etc._n etc._n isti_fw-la sunt_fw-la dei_fw-la martyr_n nostri_fw-la praesules_fw-la speculatores_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la actuunque_fw-la nostrorum_fw-la the_o soul_n say_v he_o that_o be_v guilty_a of_o great_a sin_n be_v less_o fit_a to_o request_v or_o at_o least_o to_o obtain_v the_o remission_n thereof_o for_o herself_o therefore_o let_v she_o use_v the_o intercession_n of_o other_o unto_o her_o heavenly_a physician_n the_o angel_n be_v to_o be_v beseech_v that_o be_v give_v we_o of_o god_n for_o our_o guard_n the_o martyr_n be_v to_o be_v beseech_v in_o who_o patronage_n we_o may_v seem_v to_o claim_v interest_n by_o the_o pledge_n of_o their_o body_n they_o may_v intercede_v for_o our_o sin_n who_o wash_v out_o their_o own_o with_o their_o blood_n these_o be_v the_o martyr_n of_o god_n our_o governor_n the_o overseer_n of_o our_o life_n and_o action_n the_o eight_o demonstration_n that_o doctrine_n and_o devotion_n which_o be_v deliver_v by_o full_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n as_o practise_v in_o all_o age_n since_o they_o as_o a_o exercise_n of_o christian_a piety_n be_v a_o part_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n but_o such_o be_v the_o worship_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n for_o not_o only_o in_o the_o three_o age_n there_o be_v not_o obscure_a but_o manifest_a step_n of_o this_o practice_n as_o the_o centurist_n sanctorum_fw-la centurist_n magdeburg_n centur._n 3._o c._n 4._o colum_fw-la 83._o videas_fw-la in_o doctorum_fw-la huius_fw-la saeculi_fw-la scriptis_fw-la non_fw-la obscura_fw-la vestigia_fw-la inuocationis_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la acknowledge_v but_o also_o in_o the_o second_o which_o be_v immediate_a upon_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n first_o saint_n aurelian_a disciple_n and_o successor_n of_o s._n martial_a etc._n martial_a in_o vita_fw-la s._n martialis_n adsit_fw-la nobis_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o orbe_fw-la extitit_fw-la pius_fw-la pastor_n ut_fw-la eius_fw-la orationibus_fw-la muniti_fw-la mereamur_fw-la aeternae_fw-la haereditatis_fw-la participes_fw-la fieri_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o his_o life_n pray_v unto_o he_o saint_n dionysius_n etc._n dionysius_n dionysius_n eccles._n hierarch_n c._n 3._o impositis_fw-la altari_fw-la venerabilibus_fw-la signis_fw-la adest_fw-la protinus_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la catalogus_fw-la etc._n etc._n say_v when_o the_o sacred_a &_o venerable_a sign_n in_o which_o christ_n be_v signify_v and_o take_v be_v lay_v on_o the_o altar_n present_o there_o follow_v the_o catalogue_n or_o commemoration_n of_o saint_n and_o again_o abigit_fw-la again_o idem_fw-la ecclesiastic_a hierarch_n c._n 7._o superflua_fw-la spe_fw-la ille_fw-la suspensus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la flagitat_fw-la preces_fw-la &_o naturae_fw-la ipsorum_fw-la consentaneas_fw-la sacras_fw-la operationes_fw-la abigit_fw-la he_o feed_v upon_o vain_a hope_n that_o crave_v the_o prayer_n of_o saint_n &_o do_v not_o action_n that_o agree_v with_o the_o nature_n of_o saint_n s._n ireneus_fw-la advocata_fw-la ireneus_fw-la iren._n count_v haeres_fw-la l._n 5._o c_o ult._n virgins_n euae_fw-la virgo_fw-la maria_fw-la fieret_fw-la advocata_fw-la the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v make_v advocate_n of_o eve_n which_o word_n the_o centurist_n censure_v as_o hard_a and_o incongruous_a 6._o incongruous_a magdeburgen_n centur._n 3._o c._n 6._o second_o the_o use_n of_o procession_n be_v frequent_a in_o the_o second_o age_n present_o upon_o the_o apostle_n death_n as_o do_v witness_n tertullian_n tenebit_fw-la tertullian_n tertullianus_n lib._n 2._o ad_fw-la vxorem_fw-la c._n 4._o si_fw-mi procedendum_fw-la erit_fw-la nunquam_fw-la magis_fw-la familiae_fw-la occupatio_fw-la tenebit_fw-la but_o procession_n be_v join_v with_o prayer_n unto_o saint_n and_o visitation_n of_o their_o relic_n as_o appear_v by_o eusebius_n who_o describe_v this_o practice_n say_v profitemur_fw-la say_v euseb._n lib._n 13._o de_fw-la praeparat_fw-la euang._n c._n 7._o monumenta_fw-la eorum_fw-la accedimus_fw-la votaue_fw-la ipsis_fw-la facimus_fw-la tanquam_fw-la viris_fw-la sanctis_fw-la quorum_fw-la intercessione_n ad_fw-la deum_fw-la non_fw-la parùm_fw-la iu●ari_fw-la profitemur_fw-la we_o visit_v the_o monument_n of_o martyr_n &_o offer_v vow_n and_o prayer_n unto_o they_o profess_v that_o we_o be_v not_o a_o little_a aid_v with_o god_n by_o their_o intercession_n the_o same_o be_v also_o testify_v by_o s_n chrysostome_n adornemus_fw-la chrysostome_n chrysost._n homil_n in_o ss_z inuentium_fw-la &_o maximum_fw-la saepe_fw-la eos_fw-la nuisamus_fw-la tumulos_fw-la adornemus_fw-la and_o s._n jerome_n plain_o signifyes_n it_o who_o exhort_v a_o consecrate_a virgin_n not_o to_o leave_v her_o retirement_n upon_o occasion_n of_o procession_n say_v 6._o say_v hierom._n 22._o epist._n ad_fw-la eustoch_n de_fw-fr custodia_fw-la virginit_fw-la c._n 6._o martyr_n tibi_fw-la quaerantur_fw-la in_o cubiculo_fw-la numquam_fw-la deerit_fw-la occasio_fw-la procedendi_fw-la si_fw-la quoties_fw-la fuerit_fw-la necesse_fw-la processura_fw-la sis_fw-la visit_v the_o martyr_n by_o devout_a imagination_n within_o thy_o chamber_n thou_o will_v never_o want_v occasion_n to_o go_v in_o procession_n if_o thou_o go_v as_o often_o as_o this_o will_v be_v needful_a and_o requisite_a in_o respect_n of_o visit_v the_o relic_n and_o tomb_n of_o martyr_n final_o in_o this_o primitive_a age_n the_o custom_n be_v frequent_a to_o pray_v at_o the_o shrine_v of_o saint_n and_o keep_v their_o aniversary_n festival_n day_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o smirna_n eius_fw-la smirna_n epist._n smirn._n apud_fw-la euseb_n lib._n 4._o histor._n c._n 15._o ambusta_n ossa_fw-la s._n policarpi_n pretiosissimis_fw-la gemmis_fw-la chariora_fw-la etc._n etc._n collegimus_fw-la &_o sicu●_n conveniebat_fw-la ex_fw-la more_fw-it condidimus_fw-la quo_fw-la in_o loco_fw-la solennes_n agimus_fw-la celebresue_fw-la conventus_fw-la maximè_fw-la in_o die_fw-la passionis_fw-la eius_fw-la and_o by_o tertullian_n facimus_fw-la tertullian_n tertull._n de_fw-fr corona_fw-la militis_fw-la c._n 2._o pro_fw-la natalitijs_fw-la annua_fw-la die_fw-la facimus_fw-la now_o it_o
theodos._n nor_o as_o the_o sanctifier_n of_o our_o soul_n dwell_v in_o the_o same_o by_o grace_n hierom_n in_o proverb_n c._n 2._o nullum_fw-la invocare_fw-la id●●_n intus_fw-la orando_fw-la vocare_fw-la nisi_fw-la deum_fw-la debemus_fw-la three_o that_o the_o priest_n do_v not_o invocate_v saint_n by_o direct_a prayer_n in_o the_o lyturgy_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n the_o devotion_n thereof_o be_v to_o be_v direct_v to_o god_n only_o augustine_n lib._n 22._o the_o civet_n c._n 10._o carthag_n 4._o c._n 23._o four_o that_o our_o friend_n that_o be_v decease_v do_v not_o now_o hear_v we_o in_o the_o familiar_a manner_n they_o be_v wont_v converse_v with_o us._n hierom._n ad_fw-la heliodor_n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la nepotiam_fw-la whatsoever_o i_o write_v seem_v to_o be_v dead_a &_o 〈◊〉_d because_o nepotian_n do_v not_o hear_v it_o to_o wit_n i●_n visible_a manner_n delight_v therein_o and_o applaud_v the_o same_o as_o he_o be_v accustom_v to_o do_v in_o his_o life-time_n 6._o life-time_n hence_o appear_v the_o impertinency_n of_o the_o minister_n that_o so_o often_o urge_v this_o place_n of_o s._n hierome_n pag._n 29.2_o lin_v 22._o orthodox_n pa._n 54._o li._n 6._o five_o that_o they_o do_v not_o know_v what_o be_v do_v in_o this_o world_n by_o their_o natural_a force_n augustine_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la c._n 16._o per_fw-la divinam_fw-la potentiam_fw-la martyr_n vivorum_fw-la rebus_fw-la intersunt_fw-la quoniam_fw-la defuncti_fw-la per_fw-la naturam_fw-la propriam_fw-la vivorum_fw-la rebus_fw-la interest_n non_fw-la possunt_fw-la six_o speak_v unto_o some_o decease_a person_n they_o make_v a_o if_o whether_o they_o hear_v they_o or_o not_o because_o they_o speak_v unto_o such_o as_o they_o know_v not_o certain_o to_o be_v saint_n nazianzen_n orat_fw-la 3._o in_o julian._n praise_n julian._n the_o minister_n here_o say_v do_v not_o the_o father_n reckon_v constantine_n to_o be_v in_o joy_n and_o glory_n and_o yet_o gregory_n nazianzen_n use_v a_o apostrophe_n to_o he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hear_v o_o thou_o spirit_n of_o great_a constantine_n if_o thou_o have_v any_o notion_n of_o these_o thing_n i_o answer_v you_o falsify_v the_o text_n of_o nazianzen_n both_o in_o the_o greek_a &_o in_o your_o english_a translation_n for_o his_o word_n be_v hear_v o_o thou_o spirit_n of_o great_a constantius_n if_o thou_o have_v any_o notion_n of_o these_o thing_n yea_o that_o we_o may_v see_v you_o corrupt_v the_o text_n wilful_o &_o against_o your_o conscience_n even_o in_o this_o very_a reply_n &_o in_o this_o point_n ●f_a controversy_n you_o cite_v the_o same_o pag._n 359._o light_v a._n in_o this_o manner_n audi_fw-la etiam_fw-la 〈◊〉_d constantij_fw-la magni_fw-la anima_fw-la siquis_fw-la mortuus_fw-la sensus_fw-la est_fw-la hear_v o_o thou_o spirit_n of_o ●reat_a constantius_n etc._n etc._n now_o constantius_n be_v a_o arian_n and_o a_o persecutor_n of_o catholic_n unto_o his_o die_a day_n though_o on_o his_o death_n bed_n it_o be_v say_v ●e_v make_v some_o kind_n of_o repentance_n hence_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n may_v doubt_v ●f_o his_o be_v in_o glory_n and_o say_v hear_v if_o thou_o have_v any_o notion_n of_o these_o ●●inges_n the_o same_o father_n in_o his_o funeral_n oration_n for_o his_o sister_n gorgonia_n where_o he_o say_v sister_n admit_v of_o this_o oration_n in_o lieu_n of_o many_o funeral_n offering_n if_o this_o reward_n be_v give_v to_o holy_a soul_n to_o feel_v these_o thing_n he_o do_v not_o doubt_n of_o she_o hear_v his_o prayer_n but_o only_o whether_o she_o receive_v a_o humane_a natural_a content_n in_o that_o his_o affectuous_a panigyricall_a make_v in_o her_o praise_n this_o truth_n suppose_v i_o can_v but_o conceive_v that_o your_o majesty_n profess_v so_o much_o love_n to_o the_o first_o primitive_a age_n may_v deceive_v satisfaction_n about_o this_o point_n the_o cause_n of_o protestant_n dislike_n be_v weak_a and_o not_o to_o be_v oppose_v against_o the_o strength_n of_o so_o long_o continue_v authority_n as_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v in_o their_o eight_o usual_a exception_n invocation_n of_o saint_n not_o to_o be_v dislike_v because_o not_o express_v in_o scripture_n §._o 2._o and_o first_o i_o must_v satisfy_v the_o transcendentall_a cause_n of_o their_o dislike_n rhem._n dislike_n confess_v august_n art_n 12._o fulke_o against_o rhem._n which_o be_v that_o worship_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n decease_v be_v not_o where_o express_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n without_o express_a warrant_n whereof_o nothing_o may_v lawful_o be_v do_v that_o belong_v to_o religion_n but_o this_o though_o carry_v a_o show_n of_o devotion_n in_o the_o conceit_n of_o common_a people_n be_v altogether_o unworthy_a of_o the_o erudition_n of_o any_o learned_a protestant_n for_o howsoever_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o separation_n they_o do_v mandato_fw-la do_v luther_n l_o de_fw-la seruo_fw-la arb_n &_o serm_n de_fw-fr cruse_n sive_fw-la expresso_fw-la dei_fw-la mandato_fw-la cry_v for_o express_v scripture_n express_v command_n o●_n the_o write_a word_n yet_o now_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d go_v 89._o go_v wotton_n in_o his_o trial_n pag._n 89._o from_o that_o principle_n as_o they_o be_v exceed_o angry_a 228._o angry_a john_n white_a in_o his_o defence_n pag._n 228._o with_o we_o that_o w●_n shall_v think_v that_o any_o of_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d any_o time_n broacher_n of_o such_o a_o absurdity_n wherefore_o in_o their_o write_a book_n wh●●_n they_o teach_v in_o pulpit_n i_o know_v not_o they_o 6._o they_o d._n field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 4._o c._n 20._o whitaker_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la scrip._n cont_n 1._o q._n 6._o disclaim_v from_o express_a scripture_n and_o think_v it_o a_o sufficient_a warrant_n of_o a_o christ●●●_n custom_n that_o the_o same_o be_v scripture_n be_v note_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n and_o another_o to_o be_v ground_v on_o scripture_n all_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n yet_o every_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v so_o ground_v on_o scripture_n that_o it_o may_v in_o some_o sort_n or_o other_o be_v prove_v from_o scripture_n ground_v ●●_o scripture_n that_o be_v may_v be_v deduce_v by_o good_a discourse_n from_o truth_n reveal_v therein_o 〈◊〉_d be_v prove_v consonant_n to_o the_o rule_n &_o principle_n thereof_o according_a to_o which_o ample_a extent_n of_o scripture_n unto_o thing_n deducible_a from_o they_o or_o consonant_n unto_o they_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_a custom_n that_o have_v not_o warrant_n in_o god_n word_n as_o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v this_o only_a we_o require_v that_o ignorant_a people_n be_v not_o judge_n of_o such_o inference_n a_o office_n so_o far_o above_o their_o capacity_n as_o i_o be_o persuade_v no_o unlearned_a man_n that_o have_v in_o he_o any_o spark_n of_o humility_n or_o any_o mediocrity_n of_o judgement_n will_v undertake_v it_o for_o no_o man_n be_v competent_a to_o judge_v assure_o of_o argument_n by_o deduction_n from_o scripture_n that_o have_v not_o exact_a skill_n of_o scripture_n to_o know_v the_o false_a sense_n from_o the_o true_a as_o of_o logic_n to_o distinguish_v syllogism_n from_o paralogisme_n be_v able_a to_o give_v sentence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o principle_n by_o the_o one_o and_o of_o the_o inference_n by_o the_o other_o a_o thing_n so_o hard_o as_o even_o learned_a divines_n do_v much_o suspect_v their_o own_o sufficiency_n to_o judge_v of_o deduction_n &_o dare_v not_o absolute_o pronounce_v their_o sentence_n but_o refer_v the_o same_o to_o definition_n of_o authority_n which_o beside_o skill_n of_o scripture_n &_o logic_n have_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n perpetual_a assistance_n in_o teach_v the_o christian_a church_n wherefore_o if_o protestant_n will_v bind_v we_o to_o bring_v express_a scripture_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o imag_n adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n invocation_n of_o saintes_n they_o must_v themselves_o likewise_o be_v bind_v to_o bring_v express_a scripture_n against_o anabaptist_n for_o scripture_n for_o d._n field_n l._n 4._o of_o the_o church_n c._n 20._o say_v it_o be_v not_o where_o express_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n christen_v of_o infant_n and_o for_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o sunday_n in_o lieu_n of_o the_o ancient_a sabboath_n day_n for_o their_o dedicate_a of_o practice_n of_o concern_v the_o protestant_n keep_v festival_n day_n of_o saint_n with_o religious_a solemnity_n the_o minister_n say_v not_o a_o word_n which_o be_v tacit_o to_o grant_v that_o this_o duty_n of_o religion_n be_v use_v pious_o by_o the_o english_a church_n although_o the_o same_o want_v the_o warrant_n of_o scripture_n why_o then_o may_v not_o catholic_n pray_v unto_o saintes_n though_o there_o be_v no_o warrant_n in_o scripture_n for_o such_o practice_n day_n in_o memory_n of_o the_o apostle_n with_o religious_a solemnity_n for_o the_o appear_v the_o concern_v the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n the_o minister_n say_v pag._n 302._o that_o it_o be_v
can_v understand_v and_o interpret_v 1._o cor._n 14.27.28_o which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v have_v it_o not_o be_v use_v therefore_o some_o do_v use_v prayer_n in_o public_a churchmeeting_n in_o a_o language_n so_o unknown_a as_o no_o man_n present_a can_v understand_v and_o interpret_v the_o same_o no_o not_o themselves_o &_o so_o the_o father_n interpret_v s._n paul_n s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr genes_n ad_fw-la litter_n lib._n 12._o c._n 8._o &_o 9_o s._n ambrose_n theophilact_n special_o s._n chrysostome_n erant_fw-la say_v he_o multi_fw-la qui_fw-la precabantur_fw-la &_o lingua_fw-la sonabant_fw-la ment_fw-la verò_fw-la quid_fw-la dixissent_fw-la non_fw-la intelligebant_fw-la there_o be_v many_o that_o sound_v prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n which_o even_o themselves_o do_v not_o understand_v unknown_a in_o the_o which_o no_o man_n in_o the_o church_n speak_v no_o man_n understand_v beside_o the_o celebrant_n himself_o nor_o he_o neither_o but_o by_o enthusiasm_n or_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n without_o question_n it_o be_v inconvenient_a that_o public_a prayer_n shall_v be_v say_v in_o a_o language_n in_o this_o sort_n unknown_a and_o this_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o reason_n the_o apostle_n bring_v 1._o cor._n 14._o against_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n in_o the_o church_n second_o in_o a_o language_n unknown_a to_o most_o even_o of_o the_o better_a sort_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o some_o know_v it_o and_o other_o with_o facility_n may_v learn_v it_o to_o use_v a_o language_n in_o the_o church_n for_o public_a prayer_n in_o this_o sort_n unknown_a can_v be_v prove_v unlawful_a nor_o forbid_v by_o the_o apostle_n see_v the_o reason_n bring_v by_o he_o against_o a_o language_n unknown_a make_v not_o against_o this_o for_o saint_n paul_n reprehend_v in_o the_o public_a liturgy_n a_o language_n so_o unknown_a as_o the_o minister_n or_o the_o church_n that_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o the_o idiot_n &_o ignorant_a can_v upon_o his_o knowledge_n of_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o prayer_n say_v thereunto_o amen_n in_o the_o name_n of_o they_o all_o but_o when_o the_o language_n be_v know_v by_o some_o of_o the_o church_n &_o may_v with_o facility_n be_v learn_v by_o other_o there_o be_v or_o may_v easy_o be_v find_v one_o able_a to_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o the_o idiot_n and_o ignorant_a and_o answer_v in_o their_o person_n amen_o out_o of_o his_o intelligence_n of_o the_o prayer_n in_o that_o unknown_a tongue_n notwithstanding_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v not_o approve_v the_o use_n of_o a_o language_n in_o this_o sort_n unknown_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o late_a dispensation_n of_o paulus_n the_o five_o unto_o jesuit_n to_o turn_v the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o mass_n into_o the_o vulgar_a language_n of_o china_n and_o to_o use_v the_o same_o till_o the_o latin_a language_n grow_v more_o know_v and_o familiar_a in_o that_o country_n for_o though_o public_a prayer_n in_o a_o language_n thus_o unknown_a can_v be_v prove_v unlawful_a yet_o it_o be_v undecent_a to_o use_v a_o language_n which_o to_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o hearer_n may_v seem_v barbarous_a and_o uncouth_a three_o a_o language_n may_v be_v term_v unknown_a because_o it_o be_v not_o the_o vulgar_a barbarous_a vulgar_a the_o minister_n pag._n 370._o argue_v in_o this_o sort_n the_o old_a rule_n be_v barbarus_fw-la hic_fw-la ego_fw-la sum_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la intelligor_fw-la ulli_fw-la &_o according_o your_o masse-preists_a be_v mere_a barbarian_n to_o the_o ordinary_a sort_n of_o people_n answer_n if_o he_o be_v a_o barbarian_a that_o be_v not_o understand_v the_o minister_n shall_v be_v a_o barbarian_a to_o himself_o who_o understand_v not_o himself_o do_v he_o understand_v what_o he_o say_v he_o will_v understand_v that_o this_o argument_n prove_v the_o contrary_a to_o what_o he_o intend_v for_o his_o old_a rule_n barbarus_fw-la hîc_fw-la ego_fw-la sum_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la intelligor_fw-la ulli_fw-la in_o english_a sound_v thus_o i_o be_o a_o barbarian_a where_o i_o be_o understand_v of_o no_o man_n non_fw-la intelligor_fw-la ulli_fw-la but_o the_o catholic_a priest_n say_v the_o latin_a mass_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v understand_v of_o many_o how_o then_o can_v he_o be_v a_o barbarian_a by_o this_o old_a rule_n the_o latin_a tongue_n be_v know_v of_o the_o best_a most_o civil_a and_o most_o principal_a person_n in_o the_o western_a part_n of_o the_o world_n wherefore_o he_o that_o speak_v it_o be_v not_o barbarous_a but_o account_v rather_o learn_v to_o he_o that_o understand_v not_o latin_n for_o the_o cause_n why_o the_o latin_a in_o these_o part_n be_v not_o understand_v be_v not_o the_o strangeness_n of_o the_o language_n but_o the_o rudeness_n of_o the_o hearer_n and_o want_v of_o the_o best_a education_n but_o in_o a_o country_n where_o the_o best_a civil_a and_o most_o learned_a know_v not_o latin_a the_o latin_a be_v barbarous_a though_o most_o man_n of_o better_a sort_n understand_v it_o such_o be_v ancient_o the_o latin_a language_n in_o the_o whole_a roman_a empire_n and_o now_o be_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n for_o not_o only_a priest_n understand_v the_o same_o or_o if_o some_o few_o do_v not_o it_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o bishop_n that_o ordain_v they_o but_o also_o a_o innumerable_a company_n of_o layman_n not_o only_o addict_v to_o learning_n but_o also_o other_o gentleman_n yea_o many_o of_o the_o vulgar_a partly_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o affinity_n their_o mother_n tongue_n have_v with_o the_o latin_a partly_o out_o of_o education_n which_o common_o when_o they_o be_v child_n they_o have_v service_n have_v what_o the_o minister_n here_o bring_v out_o of_o suarez_n that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a the_o minister_n or_o priest_n understand_v the_o language_n in_o which_o mass_n be_v say_v be_v misunderstand_v by_o he_o for_o suarez_n do_v not_o mean_a that_o the_o priest_n may_v lawful_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o language_n of_o the_o mass_n or_o that_o he_o do_v not_o sin_n in_o say_v mass_n without_o knowledge_n of_o the_o tongue_n but_o only_o that_o such_o prayer_n be_v notwithstanding_o available_a unto_o other_o that_o pray_v with_o the_o minister_n and_o offer_v they_o unto_o god_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n for_o if_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o minister_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v the_o public_a prayer_n please_v to_o god_n and_o available_a they_o if_o the_o minister_n chance_n to_o be_v distract_v &_o have_v his_o mind_n on_o other_o matter_n the_o people_n shall_v lose_v the_o fruit_n of_o public_a service_n how_o then_o can_v the_o service_n or_o the_o liturgy_n in_o latin_a be_v say_v absolute_o to_o be_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n which_o the_o most_o part_n beside_o woman_n in_o some_o sort_n understand_v moreover_o the_o prayer_n which_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o be_v extemporal_a make_v in_o public_a meeting_n according_a to_o the_o devotion_n of_o the_o speaker_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v pray_v in_o a_o know_a language_n that_o those_o who_o hear_v he_o may_v know_v when_o to_o say_v amen_o and_o whether_o the_o prayer_n for_o matter_n be_v such_o as_o they_o may_v lawful_o say_v amen_n thereunto_o but_o now_o the_o service_n and_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n have_v set_v office_n for_o every_o festival_n day_n approve_v by_o the_o church_n which_o by_o continual_a use_n be_v make_v so_o know_v &_o so_o vulgar_a unto_o common_a people_n as_o no_o man_n be_v so_o ignorant_a that_o use_v diligence_n or_o attention_n may_v not_o in_o short_a time_n come_v to_o understand_v they_o and_o hereunto_o serve_v exhortation_n sermon_n catechism_n private_a instruction_n manuall_n &_o primer_n in_o vulgar_a language_n where_o the_o prayer_n use_v for_o the_o church_n be_v find_v which_o show_v that_o the_o latin_a service_n can_v be_v unknown_a to_o any_o that_o will_v use_v diligence_n to_o understand_v it_o neither_o can_v any_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o may_v lawful_o say_v amen_n unto_o it_o understanding_n it_o the_o minister_n pag._n 369._o &_o 377._o argue_v in_o this_o manner_n that_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v use_v in_o prayer_n whereby_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n be_v of_o ripe_a year_n may_v not_o be_v edify_v in_o their_o understanding_n &_o to_o which_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o say_v amen_o have_v some_o distinct_a understanding_n of_o the_o thing_n speak_v answer_n first_o not_o only_o the_o learned_a but_o also_o the_o unlearned_a have_v or_o may_v have_v some_o distinct_a knowledge_n of_o the_o set_a office_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o prayer_n gospel_n and_o epistle_n read_v and_o other_o devotion_n say_v in_o secret_a they_o be_v so_o often_o and_o yearly_o repeat_v yea_o some_o for_o the_o most_o part_n daily_o second_o it_o be_v false_a that_o the_o apostle_n do_v prohibit_v all_o prayer_n that_o do_v not_o edify_v the_o understanding_n for_o though_o
mysterijs_fw-la initiantur_fw-la cap._n ●_o moses_n his_o word_n change_v the_o water_n of_o egypt_n into_o blood_n &_o again_o turn_v they_o from_o blood_n into_o water_n if_o so_o great_a be_v the_o benediction_n of_o man_n what_o may_v we_o think_v of_o divine_a consecration_n where_o the_o very_a word_n of_o our_o saviour_n work_v the_o word_n of_o elias_n have_v power_n to_o bring_v down_o fire_n from_o heaven_n &_o shall_v not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n have_v force_n to_o change_v the_o kind_n of_o the_o element_n again_o 4._o again_o ambros._n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la s●cram_fw-la cap._n 4._o thou_o see_v how_o work_n &_o efficacious_a be_v the_o word_n of_o christ._n if_o therefore_o such_o virtue_n be_v in_o his_o word_n that_o thereby_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o receive_v be_v how_o much_o more_o have_v it_o power_n that_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v still_o remain_v in_o the_o general_a latitude_n of_o be_v &_o according_a to_o the_o sensible_a accident_n and_o be_v convert_v into_o another_o substance_n viii_o four_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o transmutation_n teach_v by_o the_o father_n be_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n bind_v we_o to_o abnegate_n our_o sense_n and_o not_o to_o believe_v what_o we_o seem_v to_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n ix_o theophilact_n matth._n theophilact_n theophilact_n c._n 4._o 26._o matth._n bread_n be_v transelemented_a or_o transform_v by_o a_o ineffable_a operation_n although_o to_o we_o it_o seem_v bread_n because_o we_o be_v weak_a and_o have_v horror_n to_o eat_v raw_a flesh_n especial_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n for_o this_o reason_n bread_n appear_v but_o in_o essence_n and_o substance_n it_o be_v not_o bread_n saint_n cyrill_n 4._o cyrill_n cyrill_n hieros_n catech._n mystagog_o 4._o come_v not_o therefore_o as_o unto_o simple_a bread_n and_o wine_n for_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o affirmation_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o although_o sense_n suggest_v the_o contrary_a yet_o let_v faith_n confirm_v thou_o judge_v not_o of_o the_o thing_n by_o taste_n but_o indubitable_o &_o with_o full_a faith_n believe_v that_o thou_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o again_o know_v this_o &_o with_o full_a certitude_n believe_v that_o the_o bread_n see_v be_v not_o bread_n though_o it_o so_o seem_v to_o the_o taste_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o that_o wine_n see_v be_v not_o wine_n though_o taste_n judge_v it_o to_o be_v wine_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n x._o final_o that_o the_o father_n hold_v transubstantiation_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o continuancy_n which_o they_o teach_v of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n so_o long_o as_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n last_o as_o appeareth_z by_o their_o reserve_n of_o the_o same_o for_o reservation_n to_o have_v be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n protestant_n grant_n that_o 39_o that_o habent_fw-la veteris_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la exemplum_fw-la fateor_fw-la caluin_n instit._fw-la l._n 9_o c._n 17._o sect_n 39_o the_o sacrament_n be_v of_o some_o reserve_v in_o the_o elder_a day_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o say_v 77._o say_v fulke_o against_o heskin_n saunders_n p._n 77._o m._n fulke_o so_o great_a a_o question_n as_o whether_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v reserve_v and_o chemnitius_n 102._o chemnitius_n chemnit_fw-la in_o exam_n con._n trid._n p._n 2._o p._n 102._o grant_v that_o in_o this_o point_n on_o our_o side_n stand_v antiquitas_fw-la consuetudinis_fw-la latè_fw-la patentis_fw-la &_o diu_fw-la propagatae_fw-la and_o whereas_o he_o add_v haec_fw-la tamen_fw-la veritati_fw-la praescribere_fw-la non_fw-la debet_fw-la he_o accuse_v the_o primitive_a church_n &_o oppose_v no_o less_o against_o they_o than_o us._n and_o i_o be_o sure_a your_o majesty_n know_v that_o the_o primitive_a father_n do_v use_v to_o send_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v lawful_o absent_a from_o church_n as_o do_v witness_n s._n justine_n fine_a justine_n justin._n apol._n 2._o fine_a &_o unto_o the_o sick_a as_o innocent_n as_o dionys._n alexand_v ep_v ad_fw-la fab._n apud_fw-la euseb._n l._n 6._o cap._n 36._o chrysost._n ep._n 1._o ad_fw-la innocent_n dionysius_n alexandrinus_n write_v of_o serapion_n that_o christian_n carry_v the_o same_o to_o their_o private_a house_n to_o take_v in_o the_o morning_n before_o other_o meat_n as_o testify_v tertullian_n gorgon_n tertullian_n tertul._n l._n 2._o ad_fw-la vxorem_fw-la gregor_n nazian_n orat_fw-la de_fw-fr gorgon_n that_o many_o time_n they_o do_v wear_v the_o same_o about_o they_o for_o protection_n as_o satyri_fw-la as_o ambros._n orat_fw-la in_o obit●●_n fratris_fw-la satyri_fw-la satyrus_n brother_n to_o saint_n ambrose_n go_v to_o sea_n carry_v it_o in_o a_o stole_n by_o virtue_n whereof_o he_o be_v save_v in_o shipwreck_n that_o martyr_n have_v the_o same_o frequent_o for_o their_o viaticum_fw-la as_o 2._o as_o simeon_n metaphrast_n aquavitae_fw-la s._n stephani_fw-la papae_fw-la &_o martyris_fw-la cap._n 17._o vsuard_n in_o martyrolog_n guitmund_n de_fw-fr corp_n &_o sanguine_a l._n 2._o tharsilius_fw-la a_o most_o glorious_a martyr_n who_o be_v take_v with_o the_o sacrament_n about_o he_o permit_v himself_o rather_o to_o be_v bruise_v with_o stone_n to_o death_n then_o disclose_v it_o unto_o the_o persecutor_n who_o when_o they_o have_v crown_v thy_o search_a curious_o for_o the_o sacrament_n in_o his_o clothes_n and_o about_o his_o dead_a body_n find_v nothing_o god_n by_o miracle_n keep_v the_o same_o out_o of_o their_o impious_a hand_n saint_n lapsis_fw-la saint_n cyprian_a serm_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la cyprian_n record_v diverse_a miracle_n do_v in_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o our_o saviour_n permanent_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n namely_o of_o a_o woman_n unworthy_o approach_v to_o the_o chest_n where_o the_o same_o be_v keep_v that_o be_v fright_v back_o with_o fire_n that_o thence_o flash_v out_o tanta_fw-la est_fw-la domini_fw-la potentia_fw-la say_v saint_n cyprian_n tanta_fw-la majestas_fw-la and_o so_o full_o be_v they_o persuade_v in_o this_o opinion_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v permanent_o in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o cyrill_n calosyr_n cyrill_n cyrill_n alex._n ep_v ad_fw-la calosyr_n dare_v say_v insaniunt_fw-la qui_fw-la dicunt_fw-la benedictionem_fw-la à_fw-la sanctificatione_n cessare_fw-la siquae_fw-la reliquiae_fw-la remanserunt_fw-la eius_fw-la in_o sequentem_fw-la diem_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la mutabitur_fw-la sacrosanctum_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la virtus_fw-la benedictionis_fw-la &_o vivificativa_fw-la gratia_fw-la iugis_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la est_fw-la they_o be_v mad_a with_o heretical_a folly_n who_o say_v that_o the_o bless_a sanctification_n of_o the_o sacrament_n cease_v if_o the_o same_o be_v reserve_v until_o the_o next_o day_n for_o thereby_o the_o sacred_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o change_v but_o the_o grace_n of_o benediction_n &_o vivification_n be_v perpetual_a in_o it_o now_o what_o reason_n can_v the_o father_n have_v thus_o constant_o to_o defend_v this_o continuation_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o that_o they_o believe_v bread_n to_o be_v change_v into_o his_o body_n remain_v demonstrable_a by_o the_o form_n &_o accidence_n thereof_o so_o long_o as_o they_o remain_v entire_a and_o be_v not_o change_v into_o the_o accidence_n of_o some_o other_o substance_n xi_o a_o refutation_n of_o the_o minister_n shift_n to_o elude_v the_o former_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n according_a to_o the_o reference_n of_o the_o precedent_a number_n 1_n no_o word_n of_o scripture_n or_o christian_a antiquity_n can_v be_v so_o clear_a &_o evident_a which_o heretical_a obstinacy_n will_v not_o wrest_v against_o the_o truth_n yea_o rack_n till_o they_o rend_v they_o in_o piece_n by_o violent_a interpretation_n as_o say_v s._n ambrose_n ep._n 17._o in_o which_o kind_n be_v the_o minister_n reply_v unto_o these_o express_a &_o pregnant_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n for_o transubstantiation_n as_o will_v appear_v by_o the_o confutation_n which_o here_o ensue_v ii_o transelement_a the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d transelementation_n say_v the_o minister_n pag._n 421._o prove_v not_o transubstantiation_n for_o in_o transubstantiation_n the_o matter_n be_v destroy_v &_o the_o quantity_n and_o accident_n remain_v &_o in_o transelementation_n the_o matter_n remain_v &_o the_o essential_a &_o accidental_a form_n be_v alter_v answer_n the_o falsehood_n and_o inanity_n of_o this_o shift_n be_v convince_v by_o these_o four_o argument_n which_o show_v transelementation_n to_o import_v the_o same_o as_o transubstantiation_n the_o first_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n element_n &_o transelementation_n for_o transelementation_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n signifyes_n that_o there_o be_v a_o change_n betwixt_o they_o according_a to_o their_o element_n element_n import_v the_o primordiall_a simples_n the_o original_a principle_n the_o substantial_a part_n of_o which_o
and_o in_o they_o that_o by_o nature_n loathe_a wine_n and_o as_o this_o be_v certain_a and_o grant_v on_o our_o part_n so_o it_o be_v no_o less_o certain_a that_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v never_o practice_v the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n as_o pertain_v to_o the_o essential_a integrity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o as_o command_v by_o divine_a precept_n but_o think_v the_o receive_n under_o one_o and_o both_o kind_n a_o thing_n indifferent_a this_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o time_n since_o christ_n ascend_v from_o our_o day_n upward_o whence_o i_o gather_v five_o argument_n first_o be_v the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n among_o who_o a_o bohemian_n protestant_n 19_o protestant_n joan._n przibrau_n confess_v fid._n cath._n c._n 19_o do_v profess_v that_o have_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n before_o his_o eye_n he_o dare_v not_o censure_v the_o roman_a church_n of_o heresy_n in_o this_o point_n 112._o point_n hospin_n histor._n sacram_fw-la p._n 2._o fol._n 112._o hospinian_n write_v that_o some_o protestant_n confess_v that_o whole_a christ_n be_v real_o present_a exhibit_v and_o receive_v under_o every_o kind_n and_o therefore_o under_o the_o only_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o judge_v those_o to_o do_v evil_a that_o communicate_v under_o one_o kind_n 78._o kind_n melanct._n in_o 2._o edit_n comm._n impress_n argent_fw-fr a_o 1525._o fol._n 78._o melancthon_n as_o to_o eat_v or_o not_o to_o eat_v swine_n flesh_n be_v place_v in_o our_o power_n &_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a so_o say_v he_o i_o judge_v of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o they_o sin_v not_o who_o know_v &_o believe_v this_o liberty_n do_v use_v either_o part_n of_o the_o sign_n and_o luther_n eucharistia_n luther_n luther_n de_fw-fr captiu_fw-la babylon_n cap._n de_fw-fr eucharistia_n they_o sin_v not_o against_o christ_n who_o use_v one_o kind_n see_v christ_n do_v not_o command_v to_o use_v both_o but_o have_v leave_v it_o to_o the_o will_n of_o every_o one_o and_o hospinian_n allege_v 12._o allege_v hospin_n histor._n sacr._n p._n 2._o fol._n 12._o luther_n affirm_v it_o be_v not_o needful_a to_o give_v both_o kind_n but_o the_o one_o alone_o suffice_v the_o church_n have_v power_n of_o ordain_v only_o one_o and_o the_o people_n ought_v to_o be_v content_a therewith_o if_o it_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o church_n respect_n church_n the_o minister_n p._n 500_o say_v concern_v luther_n melancthon_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v that_o your_o benefactor_n coccius_n to_o who_o you_o be_v perpetual_o oblige_v for_o your_o reading_n allege_v some_o such_o say_n but_o how_o true_o it_o be_v uncertain_a answer_n the_o jesuit_n read_v the_o say_n he_o cit_v in_o luther_n melancthon_n &_o hospinian_n not_o in_o coccius_n unto_o who_o he_o be_v not_o so_o much_o behold_v for_o his_o reading_n as_o you_o be_v unto_o chemnitius_n for_o you_o yea_o he_o dare_v engage_v his_o credit_n that_o you_o can_v show_v some_o of_o the_o testimony_n by_o he_o cite_v in_o coccius_n which_o show_v your_o want_n of_o read_v and_o that_o your_o desire_n to_o cavil_n be_v great_a than_o your_o wit_n what_o you_o add_v that_o these_o say_n be_v not_o now_o find_v in_o luther_n &_o melancthon_n be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o confess_v that_o whereof_o the_o lutheran_n accuse_v you_o of_o the_o sacramentarian_a brood_n that_o you_o have_v most_o impudent_o falsify_v the_o work_n of_o luther_n though_o also_o hospinian_n a_o sacramentarian_a as_o you_o be_v have_v these_o saying_n both_o of_o luther_n &_o other_o protestant_n censure_v they_o in_o this_o respect_n but_o these_o testimony_n though_o they_o may_v serve_v to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o a_o clamorous_a adversary_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v any_o judicious_a man_n in_o regard_n their_o author_n be_v man_n most_o uncertain_a &_o various_a in_o their_o doctrine_n about_o religion_n now_o aver_n as_o orthodox_n and_o divine_a truth_n what_o soon_o after_o they_o fall_v to_o abhor_v as_o heretical_a &_o impious_a i_o add_v second_o the_o definition_n of_o three_o general_a counsel_n celebrate_v before_o the_o breach_n of_o luther_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o council_n of_o florence_n 4._o florence_n council_n florentin_n in_o decreto_fw-la eugenij_fw-la 4._o wherein_o be_v present_v the_o grecian_a and_o armenian_a bishop_n where_o concomitancy_n be_v define_v that_o christ_n be_v whole_a under_o each_o form_n the_o council_n of_o basill_n 30._o basill_n council_n basilien_n sess._n 30._o though_o they_o allow_v the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n unto_o the_o bohemian_o define_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n the_o council_n of_o constance_n 13._o constance_n council_n constantiense_n sess._n 13._o give_v example_n unto_o both_o the_o former_a counsel_n be_v the_o first_o that_o define_v this_o truth_n the_o three_o argument_n be_v the_o receive_v &_o allow_v general_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n which_o spontaneous_o even_o before_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n do_v abstain_v from_o the_o cup_n as_o the_o say_a council_n do_v acknowledge_v which_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o many_o that_o live_v before_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n yea_o alexander_n halensis_n 3._o halensis_n halensis_n 4._o p._n q._n 11._o in_o 2._o a._n 4._o sect_n 3._o who_o live_v two_o hundred_o year_n before_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n say_v that_o almost_o every_o where_n layman_n receive_v under_o the_o sole_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o venerable_a bede_n 14._o bede_n beda_n histor._n gent._n angl._n l._n 2._o c._n 5._o &_o l._n 4._o c._n 14._o do_v signify_v that_o in_o the_o church_n lord_n church_n the_o minister_n pag._n 502._o you_o be_v guide_v by_o that_o spirit_n which_o be_v mention_v 3._o king_n 22._o v._o 21._o when_o you_o affirm_v that_o venerable_a bede_n say_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ever_o since_o her_o conversion_n under_o s._n gregory_n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v in_o use_n for_o no_o such_o report_n be_v find_v in_o he_o answer_n take_v heed_n you_o be_v not_o guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n mention_v revelat._n 12.11_o who_o so_o perpetual_o calumniate_v your_o adversary_n for_o he_o do_v not_o affirm_v that_o venerable_a bede_n do_v so_o say_v as_o though_o he_o have_v make_v mention_n thereof_o in_o express_a term_n but_o that_o he_o do_v so_o signify_v or_o insinuate_v which_o be_v true_a for_o l._n 2._o c._n 5._o histor._n anglor_n he_o write_v how_o the_o son_n of_o a_o certain_a christian_a king_n that_o be_v decease_v be_v yet_o pagan_n say_v unto_o a_o bishop_n why_o do_v thou_o not_o give_v we_o that_o white_a bread_n which_o thou_o be_v wont_a to_o give_v to_o our_o father_n and_o do_v still_o give_v to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o church_n which_o speech_n they_o do_v often_o at_o sundry_a time_n repeat_v without_o any_o mention_n of_o the_o cup._n what_o you_o bring_v as_o contrary_a to_o this_o that_o l._n 4._o c._n 14._o he_o write_v that_o a_o certain_a man_n according_a to_o a_o revelation_n do_v present_o die_v the_o mass_n be_v end_v viatico_fw-la dominici_n corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la accepto_fw-la be_v idle_a for_o the_o sacrament_n in_o one_o kind_n contain_v in_o it_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n both_o may_v be_v term_v viaticum_fw-la dominici_n corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la the_o food_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n of_o england_n ever_o since_o her_o first_o conversion_n under_o saint_n gregory_n be_v use_v communion_n under_o one_o kind_n for_o the_o laity_n which_o can_v never_o have_v enter_v into_o the_o church_n without_o be_v note_v &_o mark_v as_o a_o heresy_n have_v not_o the_o church_n ever_o hold_v communion_n under_o one_o or_o both_o kind_n as_o a_o thing_n of_o indifferency_n the_o four_o argument_n be_v draw_v from_o many_o sign_n and_o token_n that_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v sometime_o use_v communion_n under_o one_o kind_n first_o the_o sick_a receive_v under_o the_o only_a form_n of_o bread_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o history_n of_o serapion_n relate_v by_o fabium_fw-la by_o euseb._n l._n 6._o histor._n c._n 36._o ex_fw-la ep_n dionys._n alexandrin_n ad_fw-la fabium_fw-la eusebius_n and_o the_o grecian_n at_o this_o day_n genebrardus_n day_n genebrardus_n though_o they_o give_v the_o cup_n to_o the_o communicant_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o to_o the_o sick_a they_o send_v the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o kind_n yea_o saint_n ambrose_n as_o paulinus_n ambrosi●_n paulinus_n paulinus_n in_o vita_fw-la ambrosi●_n relate_v in_o his_o life_n at_o his_o death_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n under_o the_o sole_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o straight_o after_o the_o receive_n thereof_o give_v up_o his_o soul_n second_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a custom_n in_o the_o church_n to_o give_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o layman_n 55._o layman_n tertullian_n ad_fw-la uxor_fw-la c._n 55._o
especial_o unto_o 79._o unto_o basil._n epist_n ad_fw-la caesar._n patritium_fw-la pratum_fw-la spiritual_n c._n 79._o eremite_n to_o be_v carry_v in_o most_o pure_a linen_n corporal_n home_n to_o their_o house_n to_o be_v take_v in_o the_o morning_n before_o all_o other_o meat_n but_o there_o be_v no_o sign_n or_o token_n in_o antiquity_n that_o the_o faithful_a together_o with_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n do_v carry_v away_o with_o they_o consecrate_a wine_n yea_o diverse_a history_n show_v the_o only_a form_n of_o bread_n kind_n bread_n minister_n pag._n 504._o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a custom_n to_o send_v the_o communion_n to_o person_n absent_a in_o both_o kind_n as_o appear_v by_o exuperius_n in_o s._n hierome_n tom._n 1._o epist._n 4._o and_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n of_o his_o sister_n gorgonia_n answer_n exuperius_n no_o layman_n but_o bishop_n of_o tholosa_n have_v sell_v the_o silver_n ciboriums_n &_o chalice_n of_o his_o church_n to_o maintain_v the_o poor_a be_v force_v through_o poverty_n to_o keep_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o a_o basket_n of_o osier_n &_o in_o a_o glasse-cup_n so_o carry_v they_o about_o when_o he_o do_v administer_v the_o same_o in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o people_n but_o that_o he_o carry_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o a_o glass_n out_o of_o the_o church_n about_o he_o s._n hierome_n do_v not_o say_v yea_o he_o signify_v that_o this_o use_n of_o osier-basket_n &_o glasse-cup_n be_v in_o the_o church_n say_v nihil_fw-la ditius_fw-la exuperio_fw-la nostro_fw-la qui_fw-la corpus_fw-la domini_fw-la canistro_fw-la vimineo_fw-la &_o sanguinen_n portat_fw-la in_o vitro_fw-la qui_fw-la avaritiam_fw-la eiecit_fw-la etemplo_fw-la nothing_o be_v more_o rich_a than_o exuperius_n who_o do_v carry_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o a_o osier-basket_n and_o his_o blood_n in_o a_o glass_n who_o have_v cast_v covetousness_n out_o of_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v it_o probable_a that_o he_o carry_v the_o blood_n about_o he_o in_o a_o glass_n when_o he_o go_v any_o journey_n expose_v the_o same_o to_o manifest_a danger_n of_o be_v irreverent_o spill_v special_o glass_n be_v so_o brittle_a and_o easy_o break_v and_o the_o ancient_n exceed_v solicitous_a and_o anxious_a that_o the_o blood_n may_v not_o be_v shed_v nor_o any_o particle_n of_o the_o sacred_a bread_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n say_v of_o his_o sister_n gorgonia_n pray_v earnest_o for_o the_o recovery_n of_o her_o health_n that_o whatsoever_o of_o the_o antitype_n or_o image_n of_o the_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n her_o hand_n have_v hide_v that_o she_o do_v bath_n &_o mingle_v with_o her_o tear_n which_o place_n vasquez_n who_o you_o so_o commend_v as_o learned_a and_o intelligent_a do_v show_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o holy_a image_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o death_n not_o of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n for_o woman_n be_v never_o permit_v to_o touch_v the_o sacred_a chalice_n with_o their_o hand_n nor_o to_o keep_v consecrate_v cup_n in_o their_o house_n for_o the_o blood_n but_o only_o white_a linen_n corporal_n for_o the_o body_n it_o have_v be_v also_o against_o the_o reverence_n ancient_a christian_a devotion_n do_v bear_v to_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o she_o to_o have_v pour_v her_o tear_n into_o the_o sacred_a chalice_n mingle_v they_o with_o the_o precious_a blood_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o sign_n in_o antiquity_n that_o layman_n do_v keep_v in_o their_o private_a house_n or_o do_v carry_v about_o they_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n therefore_o in_o their_o private_a house_n and_o out_o of_o the_o church_n they_o still_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n be_v carry_v away_o and_o consequent_o that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o then_o esteem_v of_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n as_o of_o a_o sacrilegious_a maym_v of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o protestant_n now_o do_v three_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a custom_n in_o the_o grecian_a 52._o grecian_a council_n loadicen_n can_v 49._o &_o trullen_n can_v 52._o church_n to_o consecrate_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n on_o saturdaye_n and_o sunday_n &_o on_o the_o other_o day_n of_o the_o week_n to_o communicate_v ex_fw-la praesanctificatis_fw-la of_o the_o presanctify_v form_n that_o be_v consecrate_v on_o the_o saturday_n or_o sunday_n before_o now_o it_o be_v not_o probable_a that_o they_o do_v consecrate_v wine_n to_o endure_v five_o or_o six_o day_n long_o for_o fear_v special_o in_o such_o hot_a country_n the_o same_o shall_v grow_v sour_a wherefore_o for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o do_v communicate_v under_o one_o kind_n four_o the_o quadrag_n the_o leo._n serm_n 4._o the_o quadrag_n manichee_n live_v in_o rome_n and_o other_o place_n shroud_a themselves_o among_o catholic_n go_v to_o their_o church_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n public_o with_o they_o under_o the_o sole_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o note_v nor_o thereby_o discern_v from_o catholic_n a_o manifest_a sign_n that_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v public_o in_o the_o church_n permit_v at_o the_o least_o upon_o some_o just_a cause_n that_o may_v be_v pretend_v for_o how_o can_v the_o manichee_n still_o refuse_v the_o cup_n have_v be_v hide_v among_o these_o ancient_a christian_n if_o they_o have_v be_v persuade_v as_o now_o protestant_n be_v that_o receive_v under_o one_o kind_n be_v a_o sacrilege_n if_o one_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n shall_v refuse_v the_o cup_n but_o once_o in_o a_o public_a communion_n in_o the_o church_n will_v he_o not_o be_v incontinent_o note_v church_n note_v the_o minister_n pag._n 560._o first_o the_o manichee_n be_v espy_v else_o how_o can_v the_o pope_n reprove_v their_o practice_n second_o vasquez_n the_o jesuit_n say_v that_o these_o heretic_n receive_v the_o cup_n into_o their_o hand_n but_o drink_v no_o wine_n and_o among_o a_o great_a multitude_n some_o few_o may_v hold_v the_o cup_n to_o their_o mouth_n &_o make_v show_n of_o drink_v and_o yet_o receive_v no_o wine_n answer_n the_o pope_n do_v reprove_v that_o practice_n of_o the_o manichee_n because_o he_o know_v it_o be_v their_o heresy_n so_o to_o do_v in_o that_o they_o hold_v wine_n to_o be_v the_o gall_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o that_o christ_n do_v not_o shed_v his_o blood_n on_o the_o cross_n which_o also_o to_o be_v their_o practice_n such_o as_o be_v convert_v from_o that_o heresy_n do_v witness_v vasquez_n do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o manichee_n do_v only_o put_v the_o cup_n to_o their_o mouth_n without_o drink_v and_o so_o lie_v hide_v and_o unknown_a for_o he_o be_v not_o so_o simple_a but_o he_o do_v see_v this_o can_v not_o be_v do_v but_o the_o deacon_n that_o give_v the_o cup_n to_o the_o communicants_a one_o by_o one_o will_v present_o have_v perceave_v it_o he_o say_v that_o they_o do_v drink_v of_o the_o consecrate_a wine_n but_o keep_v the_o same_o in_o their_o mouth_n till_o they_o come_v to_o some_o place_n where_o without_o be_v note_v they_o may_v spit_v be_v out_o which_o i_o can_v not_o think_v to_o be_v probable_a first_o the_o manichee_n hold_v wine_n to_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o impure_a and_o detestable_a as_o the_o devil_n gall_n how_o will_v they_o take_v the_o same_o into_o their_o mouth_n second_o how_o can_v they_o keep_v the_o wine_n in_o their_o mouth_n so_o long_o but_o that_o some_o part_n thereof_o will_v go_v down_o three_o s._n leo_n bid_v catholic_n to_o note_v the_o man_n that_o omnino_fw-la altogether_o refrain_v from_o the_o cup_n signify_v that_o they_o may_v by_o this_o their_o perpetual_a abstinence_n be_v distinguish_v from_o catholic_n that_o sometime_o refrain_v but_o if_o they_o take_v still_o the_o wine_n into_o their_o mouth_n keep_v the_o same_o there_o till_o they_o come_v to_o a_o solitary_a place_n where_o they_o may_v spit_v it_o out_o secure_o how_o can_v they_o be_v discern_v by_o their_o abstayn_v from_o the_o cup_n more_o than_o any_o other_o catholic_n do_v use_v to_o do_v hence_o even_o vasquez_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o this_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o dissimulation_n of_o heretic_n namely_o of_o the_o macedonian_a woman_n relate_v by_o sozom._n l._n 8._o c._n 5._o be_v probabile_fw-la &_o valde_fw-la apparens_fw-la probable_a and_o very_a apparent_a to_o prove_v that_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v arbitrary_a and_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a in_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o last_o argument_n be_v practice_v of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v of_o the_o first_o christian_n under_o they_o of_o who_o we_o read_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2.42_o apostle_n act._n 2.42_o erant_fw-la perseverantes_fw-la in_o doctrina_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la &_o communicatione_n fractionis_fw-la panis_fw-la &_o orationibus_fw-la speak_v of_o sacred_a eucharistical_a bread_n the_o take_v whereof_o be_v join_v with_o prayer_n which_o unto_o the_o new_o baptize_v be_v
locus_fw-la &_o c_o teach_v gather_v their_o opinion_n of_o this_o his_o sanctiiy_n from_o the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o extreme_o penitential_a be_v he_o in_o his_o continual_a pray_v fast_a lie_v on_o the_o ground_n endure_v cold_a wind_n &_o weather_n his_o wear_n continual_o a_o rough_a haircloth_n whereof_o saint_n paulinus_n write_v severum_fw-la write_v paulin._n ep_v 11._o ad_fw-la severum_fw-la vestis_fw-la erat_fw-la curui_fw-la setis_fw-la compacta_fw-la cameli_fw-la contra_fw-la luxuriam_fw-la molles_fw-la duraret_fw-la ut_fw-la artus_fw-la arceretque_fw-la grave_n compuncto_fw-la corpore_fw-la somnos_fw-la what_o a_o mighty_a mass_n of_o superabounding_a 5._o superabounding_a that_o saint_n can_v make_v superaboundant_a satisfaction_n be_v also_o prove_v by_o the_o say_n of_o the_o minister_n in_o the_o censure_n sect._n 4._o §._o 5._o satisfaction_n be_v gather_v from_o the_o life_n of_o this_o saint_n alone_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n what_o affliction_n do_v they_o endure_v which_o saint_n paul_n 11.36_o paul_n ad_fw-la heb._n 11.36_o gather_v together_o in_o the_o eleaventh_o chapter_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n be_v nevertheless_o man_n of_o most_o holy_a life_n innocent_a and_o without_o any_o grievous_a sin_n 11_o sin_n 1._o cor._n 4.2_o cor._n 11_o that_o the_o world_n be_v unworthy_a of_o they_o as_o also_o the_o apostle_n who_o labour_n be_v intolerable_a special_o such_o as_o saint_n paul_n record_v endure_v by_o himself_o who_o yet_o after_o baptism_n in_o which_o his_o sin_n be_v full_o and_o certain_o remit_v never_o do_v grievous_o offend_v god_n the_o labour_n 2._o labour_n cypr._n l._n 4._o epist_n 2._o and_o torment_n of_o martyr_n be_v extreme_a and_o yet_o any_o the_o least_o martyrdom_n be_v sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v for_o any_o great_a multitude_n of_o offence_n joan_n offence_n aug._n tract_n 64._o in_o joan_n quoad_fw-la reatum_fw-la culpae_fw-la &_o poenae_fw-la of_o who_o merit_n the_o church_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n do_v make_v most_o account_n to_o who_o afterward_o succeed_v another_o kind_n of_o martyrdom_n cantica_fw-la martyrdom_n ber._n serm_n 41._o in_o cantica_fw-la terror_fw-la quidem_fw-la mitius_fw-la sed_fw-la diuturnitate_fw-la molestius_fw-la of_o holy_a confessor_n special_o of_o many_o most_o holy_a eremites_n these_o manifold_a affliction_n endure_v by_o saint_n far_o above_o measure_n of_o the_o temporal_a penalty_n which_o after_o the_o eternal_a be_v gracious_o remit_v do_v remain_v due_a to_o their_o offence_n do_v not_o perish_v nor_o be_v forget_v but_o be_v lay_v up_o in_o the_o memory_n of_o god_n the_o three_o proposition_n the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v principal_o of_o the_o superabundant_a satisfaction_n of_o christ_n who_o do_v endure_v much_o more_o than_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o redemption_n of_o man_n wherewith_o be_v join_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o saint_n we_o join_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o saint_n with_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n treasure_n not_o because_o we_o believe_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v insufficient_a alone_o to_o satisfy_v for_o sin_n nisi_fw-la velut_fw-la arescentis_fw-la &_o exhausti_fw-la defectus_fw-la aliunde_fw-la suppleatur_fw-la &_o sufficiatur_fw-la as_o mistake_o not_o to_o say_v calumnious_o caluin_n lib._n 4._o instit._fw-la cap._n 9_o n._n 39_o report_v of_o us._n for_o pope_n clement_n the_o 6._o who_o protestant_n accuse_v as_o the_o first_o author_n of_o this_o treasure_n affirm_v even_o in_o his_o constitution_n about_o this_o matter_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v of_o a_o infinite_a price_n and_o every_o drop_n thereof_o sufficient_a to_o ctncell_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o reason_n of_o this_o conjunction_n be_v these_o three_o first_o that_o penal_a work_n of_o saint_n as_o they_o be_v satisfactory_a be_v not_o without_o fruit_n for_o be_v satisfactory_a and_o not_o have_v the_o effect_n of_o satisfaction_n in_o their_o own_o innocent_a &_o undefiled_a person_n they_o will_v be_v without_o this_o fruit_n and_o effect_n except_o they_o be_v apply_v unto_o other_o that_o be_v poor_a and_o needy_a in_o who_o satisfaction_n be_v scant_o and_o the_o debt_n of_o temporal_a pain_n abound_v the_o second_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n who_o merit_n be_v so_o powerful_a as_o to_o purchase_v to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n such_o excellent_a &_o admirable_a saint_n so_o pure_a of_o life_n so_o fervent_a in_o penance_n as_o their_o satisfaction_n may_v suffice_v to_o pay_v the_o debt_n of_o temporal_a pain_n due_a unto_o other_o the_o three_o reason_n be_v to_o make_v man_n love_v the_o church_n and_o society_n of_o saint_n whereby_o they_o come_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o aboundancy_n of_o her_o treasure_n to_o pay_v their_o grievous_a debt_n this_o be_v that_o comfortable_a article_n of_o the_o apostle_n put_v down_o in_o the_o creed_n to_o be_v know_v of_o every_o one_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n this_o be_v that_o which_o make_v king_n david_n exult_v say_v 63._o say_v psal._n 118._o vers_fw-la 63._o i_o be_o partaker_n with_o all_o they_o that_o fear_v thou_o &_o keep_v thy_o commaundment_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o apostle_n exhort_v we_o 12._o we_o coloss._n 1._o v._o 12._o gratias_fw-la agamus_fw-la deo_fw-la patri_fw-la qui_fw-la dignos_fw-la nos_fw-la fecit_fw-la in_o partem_fw-la sortis_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la in_o lumine_fw-la this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o same_o apostle_n write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n 1.8.14_o exhort_v they_o to_o be_v liberal_a towards_o titus_n and_o luke_n for_o the_o present_n let_v your_o abundance_n in_o temporal_a good_n supply_v their_o want_n that_o also_o their_o abundance_n in_o pious_a work_n may_v be_v a_o supplement_n unto_o your_o want_n this_o hope_n to_o supply_v in_o this_o kind_a the_o spiritual_a need_n of_o christian_n by_o the_o abundance_n of_o his_o suffering_n make_v saint_n paul_n so_o much_o rejoice_v in_o they_o 24._o they_o coloss._n 1._o 24._o i_o joy_n say_v he_o in_o my_o suffering_n for_o you_o and_o i_o make_v full_a the_o thing_n that_o want_v of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n in_o my_o flesh_n for_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n and_o again_o 12.15_o again_o 2._o cor._n 12.15_o cupio_fw-la impendi_fw-la &_o superimpendi_fw-la pro_fw-la vobis_fw-la out_o of_o which_o word_n num._n word_n origen_n hom_n 10._o in_o num._n origen_n gather_v that_o s._n paul_n as_o a_o kind_n of_o victim_n or_o sacrifice_n do_v expiate_v the_o sin_n of_o other_o not_o satisfy_v for_o the_o injury_n against_o god_n nor_o for_o the_o eternal_a punishment_n due_a but_o for_o one_o outward_a and_o transitory_a effect_n of_o sin_n to_o wit_n the_o debt_n of_o temporal_a pain_n in_o this_o sense_n also_o saint_n augustine_n interprete_v the_o former_a word_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o suffer_v in_o his_o body_n the_o thing_n want_v of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n 61._o christ_n aug._n in_o ep_v 61._o patitur_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o membris_fw-la suis_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la in_fw-la nobis_fw-la ipsis_fw-la ad_fw-la communem_fw-la hanc_fw-la quasi_fw-la republicam_fw-la nam_fw-la cuique_fw-la pro_fw-la modulo_fw-la nostro_fw-la exoluimus_fw-la quod_fw-la debemus_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la posse_fw-la virium_fw-la nostrarum_fw-la quasi_fw-la canonem_fw-la passionum_fw-la inferimus_fw-la paratoriâ_fw-la plenariâ_fw-la christ_n suffer_v in_o his_o member_n that_o be_v even_o in_o we_o as_o for_o a_o commonwealth_n for_o every_o one_o of_o we_o pay_v his_o own_o debt_n according_a to_o his_o mean_a power_n &_o according_a to_o his_o force_n put_v into_o the_o plenary_a storehouse_n a_o certain_a measure_n of_o suffering_n this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o at_o the_o petition_n of_o constant_a confessor_n in_o prison_n do_v relieve_v the_o penalty_n that_o sinner_n be_v enjoin_v to_o perform_v to_o satisfy_v not_o only_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n after_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n still_o continue_v unto_o the_o infliction_n of_o temporal_a pain_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o 15._o of_o cypr._n l._n 3._o ep_v 15._o saint_n cyprian_n and_o that_o this_o relaxation_n of_o temporal_a pain_n be_v do_v by_o apply_v the_o abundant_a satisfaction_n of_o holy_a confessor_n and_o design_v martyr_n unto_o the_o penitent_n that_o receive_v indulgence_n at_o their_o intercession_n appear_v by_o tertullian_n for_o he_o fall_v from_o the_o church_n into_o the_o error_n of_o montanus_n whereof_o one_o be_v that_o for_o christian_n sin_v after_o baptism_n there_o be_v no_o remission_n of_o sin_n refute_v the_o catholic_a custom_n of_o remit_v penalty_n unto_o sinner_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o martyr_n speak_v thus_o 22._o thus_o tertul._n lib._n de_fw-la pudicit_fw-la cap._n 22._o let_v it_o suffice_v the_o martyr_n they_o have_v cancel_v &_o satisfy_v for_o their_o own_o sin_n it_o be_v ingratitude_n or_o pride_n for_o one_o prodigal_o to_o cast_v abroad_o upon_o other_o that_o which_o as_o a_o great_a
the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n may_v join_v together_o with_o your_o excellent_a wisdom_n and_o learning_n to_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n although_o i_o be_v confident_a that_o examine_v religion_n by_o the_o mere_a rigour_n of_o only_a scripture_n the_o catholic_a doctrine_n will_v get_v the_o victory_n more_o clear_a and_o express_v testimony_n stand_v on_o our_o side_n than_o any_o that_o protestant_n can_v bring_v for_o themselves_o vanitatum_fw-la themselves_o this_o be_v further_a make_v clear_a by_o the_o rejoinder_n so_o that_o it_o be_v but_o the_o face_n of_o a_o minister_n to_o say_v in_o this_o place_n that_o our_o rely_v on_o scripture_n be_v vanitas_fw-la vanitatum_fw-la as_o by_o the_o former_a discourse_n may_v appear_v although_o also_o i_o be_v much_o more_o confident_a in_o the_o tradition_n and_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n interpret_n scripture_n which_o by_o so_o full_a consent_n deliver_v the_o roman_a doctrine_n that_o partiality_n itself_o due_o ponder_v the_o weight_n of_o thing_n can_v hardly_o in_o hart_n and_o inward_o judge_v against_o they_o yet_o my_o chief_a hope_n be_v in_o these_o charitable_a thought_n and_o desire_n of_o peace_n and_o unity_n in_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v inspire_v into_o your_o breast_n for_o suppose_v that_o preconceipt_n instill_v into_o tender_a mind_n against_o the_o faith_n of_o ancestor_n may_v so_o far_o prevail_v as_o to_o make_v they_o think_v compare_v catholic_n with_o protestant_n that_o scripture_n stand_v equal_o on_o both_o side_n yea_o sift_v the_o matter_n by_o scripture_n only_o that_o protestant_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v the_o upper_a hand_n yet_o charity_n will_v move_v this_o question_n whether_o the_o testimony_n and_o argument_n they_o bring_v from_o scripture_n be_v so_o undeniable_o clear_a and_o so_o avoidable_o strong_a that_o no_o answer_n or_o evasion_n may_v be_v find_v but_o the_o roman_a scripture_n roman_a the_o minister_n say_v we_o give_v seem_v and_o appear_v solution_n but_o this_o be_v do_v by_o sophistry_n i_o ask_v who_o shall_v be_v judge_n or_o how_o can_v this_o by_o try_v by_o scripture_n church_n must_v be_v refuse_v notwithstanding_o so_o much_o discord_n and_o dissension_n so_o much_o inconstancy_n &_o incertainty_n about_o religion_n which_o as_o reason_n prove_v must_v and_o as_o experience_n show_v do_v thereupon_o ensue_v for_o if_o you_o cast_v away_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o her_o authority_n no_o church_n be_v leave_v in_o the_o world_n that_o can_v with_o reason_n or_o dare_v for_o shame_n challenge_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o her_o definition_n &_o if_o such_o a_o church_n be_v want_v what_o mean_n be_v leave_v either_o to_o keep_v the_o learned_a certain_o in_o peace_n or_o to_o give_v unto_o the_o ignorant_a assurance_n what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n the_o apostle_n first_o preach_v a_o church_n fallible_a in_o her_o teach_n be_v by_o the_o learned_a to_o be_v trust_v no_o further_o than_o they_o do_v see_v her_o doctrine_n consonant_a unto_o scripture_n and_o so_o they_o may_v neglect_v her_o judgement_n when_o they_o seem_v to_o have_v evidence_n of_o scripture_n against_o she_o and_o if_o this_o liberty_n of_o contradiction_n be_v grant_v what_o hope_v of_o unity_n remain_v when_o a_o private_a man_n may_v wrangle_v eternal_o with_o the_o whole_a church_n &_o never_o be_v convince_v apparent_o of_o teach_v against_o the_o scripture_n whereof_o we_o have_v to_o many_o daily_a example_n if_o we_o take_v out_o of_o the_o world_n a_o church_n infallible_a whence_o shall_v ignorant_a man_n learn_v which_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n that_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v it_o be_v as_o evident_a as_o the_o sun_n shine_v at_o noon_n day_n and_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n have_v force_v some_o protestant_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n in_o our_o time_n be_v grow_v in_o number_n so_o many_o and_o in_o nature_n so_o intricate_a that_o few_o have_v time_n and_o leisure_n 1._o field_n of_o the_o church_n prefat_n in_o l._n 1._o few_o strength_n of_o understanding_n to_o examine_v they_o so_o that_o nothing_o remain_v for_o man_n desirous_a of_o satisfaction_n in_o thing_n of_o such_o consequence_n but_o diligent_o to_o search_v out_o which_o amongst_o all_o the_o societye_n of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o pillar_n &_o ground_n of_o truth_n that_o so_o they_o may_v embrace_v her_o communion_n follow_v her_o direction_n rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n if_o there_o be_v no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o the_o the_o roman_a that_o can_v with_o any_o colour_n pretend_v infallibility_n of_o judgement_n if_o the_o most_o part_n of_o man_n can_v by_o their_o examine_n of_o controversy_n be_v resolve_v in_o faith_n and_o therefore_o must_v perish_v eternal_o except_o they_o find_v a_o church_n that_o be_v a_o infallible_a mistress_n of_o truth_n in_o who_o judgement_n they_o may_v secure_o rest_v certain_o those_o that_o have_v bowel_n of_o charity_n will_v accept_v of_o any_o probable_a answer_n unto_o protestant_n objection_n and_o accusation_n rather_o than_o discredit_v the_o authority_n of_o so_o necessary_a a_o church_n which_o be_v discredit_v no_o church_n remain_v in_o the_o world_n of_o credit_n sufficient_a to_o sustain_v the_o weight_n of_o christian_a that_o be_v infallible_a belief_n what_o a_o misery_n will_v it_o be_v if_o it_o fall_v out_o as_o it_o be_v most_o likely_a it_o will_v fall_v out_o that_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o most_o part_n of_o english_a protestant_n be_v find_v to_o have_v believe_v point_n of_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n not_o out_o of_o their_o own_o certain_a skill_n in_o scripture_n as_o they_o shall_v by_o the_o principle_n of_o their_o religion_n but_o knowledge_n but_o the_o minister_n here_o rayl_v but_o dare_v not_o direct_o answer_v the_o question_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o ignorant_a man_n who_o believe_v the_o truth_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o their_o church_n &_o not_o upon_o their_o own_o infallible_a knowledge_n upon_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o church_n that_o teach_v they_o which_o do_v acknowledge_v herself_o no_o sufficient_a stay_n of_o assure_a belief_n for_o without_o question_n man_n can_v be_v save_v who_o although_o they_o believe_v the_o truth_n yet_o believe_v it_o upon_o a_o deceavable_a ground_n and_o consequent_o by_o human_a and_o fallable_a persuasion_n and_o not_o as_o need_n be_v by_o a_o divine_a most_o certain_a belief_n ground_v upon_o a_o infallible_a foundation_n which_o can_v be_v have_v without_o a_o infallible_a church_n how_o dreadful_a then_o must_v the_o danger_n be_v of_o live_v out_o of_o the_o lap_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v of_o a_o church_n of_o infallible_a authority_n this_o church_n have_v a_o most_o glorious_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n deserve_v above_o all_o other_o the_o protection_n of_o your_o majesty_n who_o by_o a_o long_a line_n of_o religious_a catholic_a ancestor_n succeed_v in_o the_o right_n of_o two_o illustrious_a kingdom_n and_o be_v so_o beneficial_a unto_o mankind_n &_o so_o efficacious_a to_o maintain_v unity_n mother_n unity_n our_o hope_n do_v not_o die_v with_o our_o late_a sovereign_n but_o still_o live_v in_o his_o royal_a issue_n and_o of_o the_o most_o sacred_a queen_n &_o martyr_n his_o mother_n we_o can_v give_v over_o hope_n of_o your_o favour_n who_o singular_a preservation_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o your_o glorious_a mother_n against_o the_o barbarous_a attempt_n of_o heretical_a division_n that_o will_v have_v bring_v you_o to_o a_o immature_n end_n show_v to_o be_v by_o god_n infinite_a wisdom_n perordain_v for_o some_o singular_a good_a of_o mankind_n special_o by_o your_o mean_n to_o quench_v war_n and_o dissension_n and_o to_o bestow_v the_o blessing_n of_o peace_n &_o union_n on_o this_o land_n your_o title_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n spring_v from_o the_o peaceful_a conjunction_n of_o the_o two_o renown_a rose_n which_o before_o be_v mortal_a enemy_n and_o fight_v so_o many_o cruel_a field_n that_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o great_a effusion_n of_o blood_n wherein_o each_o of_o they_o be_v bathe_v we_o shall_v hardly_o discern_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o by_o the_o diversity_n of_o colour_n your_o majesty_n person_n be_v the_o root_n of_o a_o more_o happy_a union_n of_o two_o most_o glorious_a kingdom_n by_o your_o sacred_a person_n combine_v in_o assure_a peace_n which_o in_o the_o hystorye_n of_o former_a time_n be_v by_o no_o other_o mark_n more_o famous_o know_v then_o by_o their_o mutual_a war_n nothing_o remain_v to_o be_v add_v for_o the_o full_a consummation_n of_o this_o land_n happiness_n and_o your_o majesty_n immortal_a glory_n but_o the_o quench_n of_o discord_n about_o religion_n by_o bring_v they_o back_o again_o to_o the_o root_n &_o matrice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n cornel._n cyp._n lib._n 1._o epist_n 3._o ad_fw-la cornel._n to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n the_o principal_a sea_n from_o which_o sacerdotal_a and_o sacred_a unity_n spring_v and_o to_o which_o perfidious_a error_n have_v no_o access_n whereby_o your_o majesty_n shall_v extend_v the_o blessing_n of_o peace_n from_o this_o island_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o europe_n from_o the_o the_o body_n unto_o the_o soul_n and_o crown_v your_o temporal_a peace_n and_o felicity_n with_o eternal_a for_o both_o which_o not_o only_o i_o but_o all_o of_o my_o profession_n yea_o all_o catholic_n will_v offer_v unto_o almighty_a god_n our_o daily_a prayer_n finis_fw-la